| Back to Home Page | Back to Book Index
|
Genesis Chapter
One
Genesis 1
Chapter Contents
God creates heaven and earth. (1
2) The creation of
light. (3-5) God separates the earth from the waters
and makes it fruitful.
(6-13) God forms the sun
moon
and stars. (14-19) Animals created. (20-25) Man
created in the image of God. (26-28) Food appointed. (29
30) The work of
creation ended and approved. (31)
Commentary on Genesis 1:1
2
The first verse of the Bible gives us a satisfying and
useful account of the origin of the earth and the heavens. The faith of humble
Christians understands this better than the fancy of the most learned men. From
what we see of heaven and earth
we learn the power of the great Creator. And
let our make and place as men
remind us of our duty as Christians
always to
keep heaven in our eye
and the earth under our feet. The Son of God
one with
the Father
was with him when he made the world; nay
we are often told that
the world was made by him
and nothing was made without him. Oh
what high
thoughts should there be in our minds
of that great God whom we worship
and
of that great Mediator in whose name we pray! And here
at the beginning of the
sacred volume
we read of that Divine Spirit
whose work upon the heart of man
is so often mentioned in other parts of the Bible. Observe
that at first there
was nothing desirable to be seen
for the world was without form
and void; it
was confusion
and emptiness. In like manner the work of grace in the soul is a
new creation: and in a graceless soul
one that is not born again
there is
disorder
confusion
and every evil work: it is empty of all good
for it is
without God; it is dark
it is darkness itself: this is our condition by
nature
till Almighty grace works a change in us.
Commentary on Genesis 1:3-5
God said
Let there be light; he willed it
and at once
there was light. Oh
the power of the word of God! And in the new creation
the
first thing that is wrought in the soul is light: the blessed Spirit works upon
the will and affections by enlightening the understanding. Those who by sin
were darkness
by grace become light in the Lord. Darkness would have been
always upon fallen man
if the Son of God had not come and given us
understanding
1 John 5:20. The light which God willed
he
approved of. God divided the light from the darkness; for what fellowship has
light with darkness? In heaven there is perfect light
and no darkness at all;
in hell
utter darkness
and no gleam of light. The day and the night are the
Lord's; let us use both to his honour
by working for him every day
and
resting in him every night
meditating in his law both day and night.
Commentary on Genesis 1:6-13
The earth was emptiness
but by a word spoken
it became
full of God's riches
and his they are still. Though the use of them is allowed
to man
they are from God
and to his service and honour they must be used. The
earth
at his command
brings forth grass
herbs
and fruits. God must have the
glory of all the benefit we receive from the produce of the earth. If we have
through grace
an interest in Him who is the Fountain
we may rejoice in him
when the streams of temporal mercies are dried up.
Commentary on Genesis 1:14-19
In the fourth day's work
the creation of the sun
moon
and stars is accounted for. All these are the works of God. The stars are
spoken of as they appear to our eyes
without telling their number
nature
place
size
or motions; for the Scriptures were written
not to gratify
curiosity
or make us astronomers
but to lead us to God
and make us saints.
The lights of heaven are made to serve him; they do it faithfully
and shine in
their season without fail. We are set as lights in this world to serve God; but
do we in like manner answer the end of our creation? We do not: our light does
not shine before God
as his lights shine before us. We burn our Master's
candles
but do not mind our Master's work.
Commentary on Genesis 1:20-25
God commanded the fish and fowl to be produced. This
command he himself executed. Insects
which are more numerous than the birds
and beasts
and as curious
seem to have been part of this day's work. The
Creator's wisdom and power are to be admired as much in an ant as in an
elephant. The power of God's providence preserves all things
and fruitfulness
is the effect of his blessing.
Commentary on Genesis 1:26-28
Man was made last of all the creatures: this was both an
honour and a favour to him. Yet man was made the same day that the beasts were;
his body was made of the same earth with theirs; and while he is in the body
he inhabits the same earth with them. God forbid that by indulging the body
and the desires of it
we should make ourselves like the beasts that perish!
Man was to be a creature different from all that had been hitherto made. Flesh
and spirit
heaven and earth
must be put together in him. God said
"Let
us make man." Man
when he was made
was to glorify the Father
Son
and
Holy Ghost. Into that great name we are baptized
for to that great name we owe
our being. It is the soul of man that especially bears God's image. Man was
made upright
Ecclesiastes 7:29. His understanding saw Divine
things clearly and truly; there were no errors or mistakes in his knowledge;
his will consented at once
and in all things
to the will of God. His
affections were all regular
and he had no bad appetites or passions. His
thoughts were easily brought and fixed to the best subjects. Thus holy
thus
happy
were our first parents in having the image of God upon them. But how is
this image of God upon man defaced! May the Lord renew it upon our souls by his
grace!
Commentary on Genesis 1:29
30
Herbs and fruits must be man's food
including corn
and
all the products of the earth. Let God's people cast their care upon him
and
not be troubled about what they shall eat
and what they shall drink. He that
feeds his birds will not starve his babes.
Commentary on Genesis 1:31
When we come to think about our works
we find
to our
shame
that much has been very bad; but when God saw his work
all was very
good. Good
for it was all just as the Creator would have it to be. All his
works
in all places of his dominion
bless him; and therefore
bless thou the
Lord
O my soul. Let us bless God for the gospel of Christ
and when we
consider his almighty power
let us sinners flee from the wrath to come. If
new-created unto the image of God in holiness
we shall at length enter the
"new heavens and new earth
wherein dwelleth righteousness."
¢w¢w Matthew Henry¡mConcise Commentary on Genesis¡n
Genesis 1
Verse 1
Observe here. 1. The effect produced
The
heaven and the earth - That is
the world
including the whole frame and
furniture of the universe. But 'tis only the visible part of the creation that
Moses designs to give an account of. Yet even in this there are secrets which
cannot be fathomed
nor accounted for. But from what we see of heaven and
earth
we may infer the eternal power and godhead of the great Creator. And let
our make and place
as men
mind us of our duty
as Christians
which is always
to keep heaven in our eye
and the earth under our feet. Observe 2. The author
and cause of this great work
God. The Hebrew word is Elohim; which (1.) seems
to mean The Covenant God
being derived from a word that signifies to swear.
(2.) The plurality of persons in the Godhead
Father
Son
and Holy Ghost. The
plural name of God in Hebrew
which speaks of him as many
tho' he be but one
was to the Gentiles perhaps a favour of death unto death
hardening them in
their idolatry; but it is to us a favour of life unto life
confirming our
faith in the doctrine of the Trinity
which
tho' but darkly intimated in the
Old Testament
is clearly revealed in the New. Observe 3. The manner how this
work was effected; God created
that is
made it out of nothing. There was not
any pre-existent matter out of which the world was produced. The fish and fowl
were indeed produced out of the waters
and the beasts and man out of the
earth; but that earth and those waters were made out of nothing. Observe 4.
When this work was produced; In the beginning - That is
in the beginning of
time. Time began with the production of those beings that are measured by time.
Before the beginning of time there was none but that Infinite Being that
inhabits eternity. Should we ask why God made the world no sooner
we should
but darken counsel by words without knowledge; for how could there be sooner or
later in eternity?
Verse 2
Where we have an account of the first matter
and the first Mover. 1. A chaos was the first matter. 'Tis here called the
earth
(tho' the earth
properly taken
was not made 'till the third day
Genesis 1:10) because it did most resemble that
which was afterwards called earth
a heavy unwieldy mass. 'Tis also called the
deep
both for its vastness
and because the waters which were afterwards
separated from the earth were now mixed with it. This mighty bulk of matter was
it
out of which all bodies were afterwards produced. The Creator could have
made his work perfect at first
but by this gradual proceeding he would shew
what is ordinarily the method of his providence
and grace. This chaos
was
without form and void. Tohu and Bohu
confusion and emptiness
so those words
are rendered
Isaiah 34:11. 'Twas shapeless
'twas useless
'twas without inhabitants
without ornaments; the shadow or rough draught of
things to come. To those who have their hearts in heaven
this lower world
in
comparison of the upper
still appears to be confusion and emptiness. And
darkness was upon the face of the deep-God did not create this darkness
(as he
is said to create the darkness of affliction
Isaiah 45:7.) for it was only the want of light.
2. The Spirit of God was the first Mover; He moved upon the face of the waters
- He moved upon the face of the deep
as the hen gathereth her chicken under
her wings
and hovers over them
to warm and cherish them
Matthew 23:37 as the eagle stirs up her nest
and fluttereth over her young
('tis the same word that is here used) Deuteronomy 32:11.
Verses 3-5
We have here a farther account of the first
day's work. In which observe
1. That the first of all visible beings which God
created was light
the great beauty and blessing of the universe: like the
first-born
it doth
of all visible beings
most resemble its great parent in
purity and power
brightness and beneficence. 2. That the light was made by the
word of God's power; He said
Let there be light - He willed it
and it was
done; there was light - Such a copy as exactly answered the original idea in
the eternal mind. 3. That the light which God willed
he approved of.
God saw the light
that it was good ¡X 'Twas exactly as he designed it; and it was fit to answer the end for
which he designed it. 4. That God divided the light from the darkness - So put
them asunder as they could never be joined together: and yet he divided time
between them
the day for light
and the night for darkness
in a constant
succession. Tho' the darkness was now scattered by the light
yet it has its
place
because it has its use; for as the light of the morning befriends the
business of the day
so the shadows of the evening befriend the repose of the
night. God has thus divided between light and darkness
because he would daily
mind us that this is a world of mixtures and changes. In heaven there is
perpetual light
and no darkness; in hell utter darkness
and no light: but in
this world they are counter-changed
and we pass daily from one to another;
that we may learn to expect the like vicissitudes in the providence of God. 5.
That God divided them from each other by distinguishing names. He called the
light Day
and the darkness he called night - He gave them names as Lord of
both. He is the Lord of time
and will be so 'till day and night shall come to
an end
and the stream of time be swallowed up in the ocean of eternity. 6.
That this was the first day's work
The evening and the morning were the first
day - The darkness of the evening was before the light of the morning
that it
might set it off
and make it shine the brighter.
Verses 6-8
We have here an account of the second day's
work
the creation of the firmament. In which observe
1. The command of God;
Let there be a firmament - An expansion; so the Hebrew word signifies
like a
sheet spread
or a curtain drawn out. This includes all that is visible above
the earth
between it and the third heavens
the air
its higher
middle
and
lower region
the celestial globe
and all the orbs of light above; it reaches
as high as the place where the stars are fixed
for that is called here the
firmament of heaven
Genesis 1:14
15
and as low as the place where
the birds fly for that also is called the firmament of heaven
Genesis 1:20. 2. The creation of it: and God
made the firmament. 3. The design of it; to divide the waters from the
waters-That is
to distinguish between the waters that are wrapt up in the
clouds
and those that cover the sea; the waters in the air
and those in the
earth. 4. The naming it; He called the firmament Heaven - 'Tis the visible
heaven
the pavement of the holy city. The height of the heavens should mind us
of God's supremacy
and the infinite distance that is between us and him; the
brightness of the heavens
and their purity
should mind us of his majesty
and
perfect holiness; the vastness of the heavens
and their encompassing the
earth
and influence upon it
should mind us of his immensity and universal
providence.
Verses 9-13
The third day's work is related in these
verses; the forming the sea and the dry land
and making the earth fruitful.
Hitherto the power of the Creator had been employed about the upper part of the
visible world; now he descends to this lower world
designed for the children
of men
both for their habitation
and their maintenance. And here we have an
account of the fitting of it for both; the building of their house
and the
spreading of their table. Observe
1. How the earth was prepared to be a
habitation for man by the gathering of the waters together
and making the dry
land appear. Thus
instead of that confusion which was
when earth and water
were mixed in one great mass; now there is order
by such a separation as
rendered them both useful. (1.) The waters which covered the earth were ordered
to retire
and to gather into one place
viz. those hollows which were fitted
for their reception. The waters thus lodged in their proper place
he called
Seas; for though they are many
in distant regions
yet either above ground or
under ground
they have communication with each other
and so they are one
and
the common receptacle of waters
into which all the rivers run. (2.) The dry
land was made to appear
and emerge out of the waters
and was called Earth.
Observe
2. How the earth was furnished for the support of man
Genesis 1:11
12. Present provision was made
by
the immediate products of the earth
which
in obedience to God's command
was
no sooner made but it became fruitful. Provision was likewise made for time to
come
by the perpetuating of the several species of vegetables
every one
having its seed in itself after its kind
that during the continuance of man upon
the earth
food might be fetched out of the earth
for his use and benefit.
Verses 14-19
This is the history of the fourth day's work
the creating the sun
moon and stars. Of this we have an account
1. In
general
verse 14
15. where we have
(1.) The command given concerning them.
Let there be lights in the firmament of
heaven ¡X God had said
Genesis 1:3 Let there be light
and there was
light; but that was
as it were
a chaos of light
scattered and confused; now
it was collected and made into several luminaries
and so rendered both more
glorious and more serviceable. (2.) The use they were intended to be of to this
earth. [1.] They must be for the distinction of times
of day and night
summer
and winter. [2.] They must be for the direction of actions: they are for signs
of the change of weather
that the husbandman may order his affairs with
discretion. They do also give light upon the earth - That we may walk John 11:9 and work John 9:4 according as the duty of every day
requires. The lights of heaven do not shine for themselves
nor for the world of
spirits above
they need them not; but they shine for us
and for our pleasure
and advantage. Lord
what is man that he should be thus regarded
Psalms 8:3
4. 2. In particular
Genesis 1:16
17
18
The lights of heaven are the
sun
moon and stars
and these all are the work of God's hands. (1.) The sun is
the greatest light of all
and the most glorious and useful of all the lamps of
heaven; a noble instance of the Creator's wisdom
power and goodness
and an
invaluable blessing to the creatures of this lower world. (2.) The moon is a
lesser light
and yet is here reckoned one of the greater lights
because
though in regard of its magnitude
it is inferior to many of the stars
yet in
respect of its usefulness to the earth
it is more excellent than they. (3.) He
made the stars also - Which are here spoken of only in general; for the
scriptures were written not to gratify our curiosity
but to lead us to God.
Now
these lights are said to rule
Genesis 1:16
18; not that they have a supreme
dominion as God has
but they are rulers under him. Here the lesser light
the
moon
is said to rule the night; but Psalms 136:9 the stars are mentioned as sharers
in that government
the moon and stars to rule by night. No more is meant
but
that they give light
Jeremiah 31:35. The best and most honourable way
of ruling is
by giving light
and doing good.
Verses 20-23
Each day hitherto hath produced very excellent
beings
but we do not read of the creation of any living creature till the
fifth day. The work of creation not only proceeded gradually from one thing to
another
but advanced gradually from that which was less excellent
to that
which was more so. 'Twas on the fifth day that the fish and fowl were created
and both out of the waters. Observe
1. The making of the fish and fowl at
first. Genesis 1:20
21 God commanded them to be produced
he said
Let the waters bring forth abundantly - The fish in the waters
and
the fowl out of them. This command he himself executed
God created great
whales
etc.-Insects which are as various as any species of animals
and their
structure as curious
were part of this day's work
some of them being allied
to the fish
and others to the fowl. Notice is here taken of the various
species of fish and fowl
each after their kind; and of the great numbers of
both that were produced
for the waters brought forth abundantly; and in
particular of great whales the largest of fishes
whose bulk and strength
are
remarkable proofs of the power and greatness of the Creator. Observe
2
The
blessing of them in order to their continuance. Life is a wasting thing
its
strength is not the strength of stones; therefore the wise Creator not only
made the individuals
but provided for the propagating of the several species
Genesis 1:22.
God blessed them
saying
Be fruitful
and
multiply ¡X Fruitfullness is the effect of God's
blessing
and must be ascribed to it; the multiplying of the fish and fowl from
year to year
is still the fruit of this blessing here.
Verses 24-25
We have here the first part of the sixth
day's work. The sea was the day before replenished with fish
and the air with
fowl; and this day are made the beasts of the earth
cattle
and the creeping
things that pertain to the earth. Here
as before
(1.) The Lord gave the word:
he said
Let The earth bring forth - Let these creatures come into being upon
the earth
and out of it
in their respective kinds. 2. He also did the work;
he made them all after their kind - Not only of divers shapes
but of divers
natures
manners
food
and fashions: In all which appears the manifold wisdom
of the Creator.
Verses 26-28
We have here the second part of the sixth
day's work
the creation of man
which we are in a special manner concerned to
take notice of. Observe
1. That man was made last of all the creatures
which
was both an honour and a favour to him: an honour
for the creation was to
advance from that which was less perfect
to that which was more so and a
favour
for it was not fit he should be lodged in the palace designed for him
till it was completely fitted and furnished for his reception. Man
as soon as
he was made
had the whole visible creation before him
both to contemplate
and to take the comfort of. 2. That man's creation was a mere signal act of
divine wisdom and power
than that of the other creatures. The narrative of it
is introduced with solemnity
and a manifest distinction from the rest.
Hitherto it had been said
Let there be light
and Let there be a firmament:
but now the word of command is turned into a word of consultation
Let us make
man - For whose sake the rest of the creatures were made. Man was to be a
creature different from all that had been hitherto made. Flesh and spirit
heaven and earth must be put together in him
and he must be allied to both
worlds. And therefore God himself not only undertakes to make
but is pleased
so to express himself
as if he called a council to consider of the making of
him; Let us make man - The three persons of the Trinity
Father
Son
and Holy
Ghost
consult about it
and concur in it; because man
when he was made
was
to be dedicated and devoted to Father
Son
and Holy Ghost. 3. That man was
made in God's image
and after his likeness; two words to express the same
thing. God's image upon man
consists
1. In his nature
not that of his body
for God has not a body
but that of his soul. The soul is a spirit
an
intelligent
immortal spirit
an active spirit
herein resembling God
the
Father of spirits
and the soul of the world. 2. In his place and authority.
Let us make man in our image
and let him have dominion. As he has the
government of the inferior creatures
he is as it were God's representative on
earth. Yet his government of himself by the freedom of his will
has in it more
of God's image
than his government of the creatures. 3. And chiefly in his
purity and rectitude. God's image upon man consists in knowledge
righteousness
and true holiness
Ephesians 4:24; Colossians 3:10. He was upright
Ecclesiastes 7:29. He had an habitual conformity
of all his natural powers to the whole will of God. His understanding saw
divine things clearly
and there were no errors in his knowledge: his will
complied readily and universally with the will of God; without reluctancy: his
affections were all regular
and he had no inordinate appetites or passions:
his thoughts were easily fixed to the best subjects
and there was no vanity or
ungovernableness in them. And all the inferior powers were subject to the
dictates of the superior. Thus holy
thus happy
were our first parents
in
having the image of God upon them. But how art thou fallen
O son of the
morning? How is this image of God upon man defaced! How small are the remains
of it
and how great the ruins of it! The Lord renew it upon our souls by his
sanctifying grace! 4. That man was made male and female
and blessed with
fruitfulness. He created him male and female
Adam and Eve: Adam first out of
earth
and Eve out of his side. God made but one male and one female
that all
the nations of men might know themselves to be made of one blood
descendants
from one common stock
and might thereby be induced to love one another. God
having made them capable of transmitting the nature they had received
said to
them
Be fruitful
and multiply
and replenish the earth - Here he gave them
1. A large inheritance; replenish the earth
in which God has set man to be the
servant of his providence
in the government of the inferior creatures
and as
it were the intelligence of this orb; to be likewise the collector of his
praises in this lower world
and lastly
to be a probationer for a better
state. 2. A numerous lasting family to enjoy this inheritance; pronouncing a
blessing upon them
in the virtue of which
their posterity should extend to
the utmost corners of the earth
and continue to the utmost period of time. 5.
That God gave to man a dominion over the inferior creatures
over fish of the
sea
and over the fowl of the air - Though man provides for neither
he has
power over both
much more over every living thing that moveth upon the earth -
God designed hereby to put an honour upon man
that he might find himself the
more strongly obliged to bring honour to his Maker.
Verses 29-30
We have here the third part of the sixth
day's work
which was not any new creation
but a gracious provision of food
for all flesh
Psalms 136:25.-Here is
1. Food provided for
man
Genesis 1:29. herbs and fruits must be his meat
including corn
and all the products of the earth. And before the earth was
deluged
much more before it was cursed for man's sake
its fruits no doubt
were more pleasing to the taste
and more strengthening and nourishing to the
body. 2. Food provided for the beasts
Genesis 1:30. Doth God take care of oxen? Yes
certainly
he provides food convenient for them; and not for oxen only that
were used in his sacrifices
and man's service
but even the young lions and
the young ravens are the care of his providence
they ask and have their meat
from God.
Verse 31
We have here the approbation and conclusion
of the whole work of creation. Observe
1. The review God took of his work
he
saw every thing that he had made - So he doth still; all the works of his hands
are under his eye; he that made all sees all. 2. The complacency God took in
his work. When we come to review our works we find to our shame
that much has
been very bad; but when God reviewed his
all was very good. 1. It was good.
Good
for it is all agreeable to the mind of the creator. Good
for it answers
the end of its creation. Good
for it is serviceable to man
whom God had
appointed lord of the visible creation. Good
for it is all for God's glory;
there is that in the whole visible creation which is a demonstration of God's
being and perfections
and which tends to beget in the soul of man a religious
regard to him. 2. It was very good - Of each day's work (except the second) it
was said that it was good
but now it is very good. For
1. Now man was made
who was the chief of the ways of God
the visible image of the Creator's glory
2. Now All was made
every part was good
but all together very good. The glory
and goodness
the beauty and harmony of God's works both of providence and
grace
as this of creation
will best appear when they are perfected. 3. The
time when this work was concluded.
The evening and the morning were the sixth
day ¡X So that in six days God made the world. We
are not to think but that God could have made the world in an instant: but he
did it in six days
that he might shew himself a free agent
doing his own
work
both in his own way
and in his own time; that his wisdom
power and
goodness
might appear to us
and be meditated upon by us
the more distinctly;
and that he might set us an example of working six days
and resting the
seventh. And now as God reviewed his work
let us review our meditations upon
it; let us stir up ourselves
and all that is within us
to worship him that
made the
heaven
earth
and sea
and the fountains of waters. All his works in
all places of his dominion bless him
and therefore bless thou the Lord
O my
soul.
¢w¢w John Wesley¡mExplanatory Notes on
Genesis¡n
GOD¡¦S
CREATIVE ACTS TYPICAL OF HIS NEW CREATION
¢¹. Darkness upon the Waters. ¡§ Darkness was upon the face of the deep¡¨
( Gen.1:2). This is typical of the state of the sinner in the darkness of sin
ignorance
and unbelief. The purpose of the Gospel
as Christ told Paul
is to
¡§ turn them from darkness to light¡¨ (Acts 26:18).
¢º. The Spirit moving upon the Waters. ¡§ And the Spirit of God moved
upon the face of the waters¡¨ (Gen.1:2). This shadows forth the work of the Holy
Spirit in regeneration; even as Peter
in reminding us of what the Lord has
done for us
says
¡§ Who hath called you out of darkness into His marvelous
light¡¨ (1. Peter 2:9).
¢». The Light shining forth. ¡§ God said
Let there be light
and there
was light¡¨ (Gen.1:3). This reminds us of the light shining into the heart by
the Holy Spirit
through the Word; in fact
the apostle uses it as an
illustration of this truth
¡§ God
who commanded the light to shine out of
darkness
hath shined in our hearts
to give the light of the knowledge of the
glory of God in the face of Jesus Christ¡¨ (11. Cor.4:6).
¢¼. Life and growth. ¡§ Let the earth bring forth¡K¡Kand the earth brought
forth grass¡K¡Kherb¡Ktree yielding fruit¡¨ (Gen.1:11
12). God said
and then life
and fruit followed. So it is with us who have heard the voice of God. We have
eternal life
and the evidence of it is growth in grace
for the command of
Christ is very clear. ¡§ Let your light so shine before men
that they may see
your good works
and glorify your Father which is in heaven¡¨ (Matthew 5:16).
¢½. Blessing and fruit-bearing. ¡§ And God blessed them
and God said
unto them
Be fruitful
¡¨ ¡®c.(Gen.1:28).
In and by Him we are blessed; in Him is our fruit found
and by Him we are
fruitful. This is the result of fellowship with Him
for ¡§ If we walk in the
light
as He is in the light
we have fellowship one with another¡¨ (1. John
1:7)
that is
with the Father and the Son.
¢¾. Union and power. ¡§ God said
Let us make man in Our image
after
Our likeness
and let them have dominion
¡¨ ¡®c.
(Gen.1:26). This was lost by sin
but
in a spiritual sense
is restored by
accepting Christ; as Paul reminded the Ephesians
in telling them what they
were
are
and should be
¡§ Ye were sometimes darkness
but now are ye light in
the Lord; walk as children of light¡¨ (Eph.5:8).
¢¿. Sanctification ( Gen.2:3). As God set apart the seventh day as a
day of rest
so He has set apart the believer in Christ for Himself; and
because he is thus set apart
he is to separate from all that is
and those who
are not the Lord¡¦s. ¡§ For what fellowship hath righteousness with
unrighteousness? And what communion hath light with darkness?¡¨ (11. Cor.6:14).
¢w¢w F.E. Marsh¡mFive Hundred Bible Readings¡n
01 Chapter 1
Verse 1
In the beginning God created the heavens and the earth
The Christian doctrine of creation
In considering the subject of creation we see
first of all
that
a distinction must be drawn between what I would call primary and secondary
creation.
Primary creation is creation proper. It is that grand act whereby Almighty God
in the beginning called into being the finite world. Secondary creation
on the
other hand
belongs to the sphere of Providence
or to the sphere of the
history of the finite world. If we look at the history of the finite world
we
see that during its course a vast series of beings have been called into
existence. All the generations of mankind have come into existence during ages
gone by. In like manner all the countless hosts of living creatures
the
animals and plants that inhabit the world. Nor is this all. Men of science now
tell us
that even the earth itself
the sun
the moon
and the planets
have
come into existence during the history of the world. There was a time in the
history of the finite world when there was neither sun
nor moon
nor earth
when the matter of which all these bodies are composed was diffused in a
previous state. They have
therefore
like ourselves
received their existence
during the history of the world. Now
the origination or bringing into
existence of all these things I call a creation. Creation is that which is the
work of an intelligent being. It is the giving of existence
by an intelligent
being
to that which had previously none. And since all these things have
received existence
and have received it at the hand of God
their origination
is a creation.
I. In regard to
SECONDARY CREATION
the great difficulty is this--If you will think over what I
have been saying to you about it
you will see that the truth of my view all
depends upon this
that the laws of nature alone and unaided are not sufficient
to govern the course of nature. The view which I have given requires us to
suppose that
in addition to the laws of nature
there is needed the Divine
Intelligence to combine and direct them. In a word
we must suppose that the
Divine Intelligence never leaves nature
but continually guides and directs its
course to those great ends and purposes which God has in view. Now here it is
that the difficulty comes in. It is held
by a large class of reasoners
that
the laws of nature alone and unaided are perfectly sufficient for the purpose
indicated. But is this view true? I think not. In fact there are many ways in
which I could show its inadequacy were this the place to discuss the question.
I shall not attempt any such discussion
but shall content myself with simply
pointing out one fact which makes it impossible; I mean the fact that the
course of nature is a history. If the course of nature were governed solely by
the laws of nature
it must
as a necessary consequence
flow in grooves or
cycles. But
in point of fact
it does neither. If we look at the course of
nature
we see that it is a varied and ever-varying stream. From the beginning
of the world up to the present moment
no two events
and no two objects
however similar
have been exactly the same in all respects. The course of
nature is a free
orderly
progressive sequence
or series of events flowing
towards
and attaining high ends and purposes. The course of nature being thus
confessedly a history
what principle is it
which alone can account for it?
You may ponder over the matter as much as you please
you may turn it and twist
it in every possible way
but you will in the end be obliged to confess that
the only principle sufficient for the purpose
is Intelligence. No other
principle but Intelligence can account for the order of a free
varied
and
progressive whole such as the course of nature actually is. Why is it that the
conviction of a never-ceasing Providence in the affairs of the world is written
in such living characters on the hearts of all men? It is from the perception
that the course of nature is a history
and the inference which is
instantaneously drawn
that it must be ordered by intelligence. The result then
is
that the course of nature cannot be conceived by us as possible apart from
the Divine Intelligence. We must suppose that the Divine Intelligence presided
over it in the beginning and has ever since continuously guided its course. Now
what follows from this? It follows that the first chapter of Genesis is
literally true
in the sense in which the ordinary English reader understands
it. It is still literally true that God created the sun
the moon
the sea
the
dry land
the various species of plants and animals. For God prepared the
conditions under which all these things came into existence. He guided the
course of nature so that it should aid or abut in their production. They are
therefore
His creations; and owe their existence to His creative fiat. I wish
I could stay to point out the many striking consequences which flow from this
view--the air of grandeur and living interest it imparts to nature
the Divine
light it sheds into every corner and crevice of it. But I must content myself
with merely indicating one point
viz.
how this view satisfies all our
religious aspirations. It brings us very near to God. It brings God all round
us and within us. But what comes home especially to the religious mind is the
assurance which this view gives us
that we
as individuals
owe our existence
not to dead and unintelligent laws
but to the will and purpose of the living
God. Our individual existence was prepared and intended by God. We are His
creation.
II. We have next
to consider PRIMARY CREATION
which is far more difficult. Primary creation
as
I have said
is that grand act whereby God called into being the finite world.
It differs from secondary creation in these two respects: first
that there
were no pre-existent materials out of which the finite world was formed
and
secondly
in that the process whereby it was made was not one of natural law
but a process of intelligence. The difficulties which have been raised in
modern times against this cardinal doctrine have been very great
and in
dealing with them I do not well know how to make myself intelligible to some of
you. One of the most perplexing of these difficulties is the view which regards
creation as a breach of the law of continuity. The law of continuity obliges us
to suppose that each state of the material world was preceded by a previous
state. Hence
according to this law
it is impossible that the material world
could ever have had a beginning. For the law compels us to add on to each state
of things
a previous state
without ever coming to a stop. If we do stop short
we break the law. And hence those who take this view would exclude creation
as
being nothing else but a stopping short
and consequent breaking of the law.
Creation
they say
is the doctrine that there is an absolutely first link in
this grand chain
and if we are to adhere to the law of continuity we must
exclude it. But this whole view of the matter is radically wrong. In supposing
creation to be the first link in the chain of continuity
we necessarily
suppose that
like all the other links
it took place in time. There was a time
before
and a time after it. But if you will think over the matter
you will
see that this could not be; for time only came into existence when the creative
process was completed. In fact
space and time
the laws of nature
and the law
of continuity
are all relations of the finite world; and they could not
possibly have any existence till the finite world itself existed
that is
till
the creative act was completed. Hence
if we would grasp in thought the
creative act
we must transcend the law of continuity; we must transcend all
the laws of nature; we must transcend and forget even space and time. If we
would understand aright the creative act
we must view the finite world solely
in relation ¡¥to the Divine Intelligence
of which it is the product. The great
question in regard to primary creation is
Is it conceivable by us? There is a
sect of people called agnostics
who say that it is utterly inconceivable
that
no intelligible meaning can be attached to the word. They have wrongly compared
creation to a process of natural law
and finding no analogy in this
comparison
they have rashly set it down as unthinkable by us. But I have shown
you that creation is not a process of natural law; I have shown you that it
transcends natural law; I have shown you that it is purely a process of
intelligence. Regarded in this point of view
I will now show you that it is
intelligible to us
not
perhaps
perfectly intelligible
but still so much so
as to afford us a very tangible notion. The Bible conception of creation is
simply this. The finite world as a whole
and in each one of its details
was
formed as an image or idea in the Divine Intelligence
and in and by that act
of formation it obtained objective or substantial reality. God had not
like
us
to seek for paper whereon to describe His plan
nor for materials wherein
to embody it. By His absolute power
the image of the world formed in the
Divine Intelligence became the actual
substantial
external world. It
obtained
as we say
objective reality. Thus the finite world was not a
creation out of nothing
neither was it the fall of the finite out of the
infinite
nor a necessary evolution out of the Divine Essence
it was the
objectified product of the Divine Intelligence. It may
however
be said that
this goes a very little way in making the act of creation conceivable to us
for we have no experience of the immediate and unconditioned externalization of
a mere mental idea
and we cannot imagine how it could be possible. I admit
that we have not the experience indicated. And yet
I would ask you
which is
the most marvellous point in the whole process--the act by which the image of
the finite world was constituted in the Divine Intelligence
or the act by
which it obtained objective reality? Plainly it is the former. It is far more
marvellous that the finite world in its first beginning
and in its whole
subsequent development
should be imaged forth in the Divine Intelligence
than
that this image should crystallize into concrete objective existence. Thus the
very point of creation which is the most difficult is made conceivable to us by
being reflected in the processes of our own minds. We can create to the extent
of forming the mental image. It is only in the externalization of our idea that
we are hemmed in and hampered by conditions. I maintain
therefore
that the
Bible doctrine
whether we believe it or not
is conceivable by us. We have
first of all
a clear notion of the human intelligence
which is infinite and
absolute in one of its aspects; this gives us a notion
inadequate no doubt
but still a tangible notion of the Divine Intelligence which is infinite and
absolute in every aspect. Then we have a clear notion of the origination or
creation of mental images or plans of things by the human intelligence; this
enables us to understand how the plan or pattern of the finite world originated
in the Divine Intelligence. The last point
viz.
the externalization of the
Divine idea
is the most difficult. But though a hard one to you and me
you
see it did not present the same elements of difficulty to those great men who
had made the powers and processes of intelligence their peculiar study. But I
will say more for the Bible doctrine. It is the only philosophical account of
the finite world that does not throw human knowledge into irretrievable
confusion. The bearing of the question is simply this. If we view the finite
world apart from intelligence
the moment we begin to reason on it
we fall
into contradiction and absurdity. The consequence of this is
that we land
ourselves first of all in agnosticism
and then in utter scepticism;
disbelieving in God
in the moral world
nay
even in the most assured results
of physical science. Hence
if we would save human knowledge
the finite world
must be viewed in relation to intelligence; and the whole question lies between
the Bible and a doctrine such as that of Fichte. Is the finite world the
product of our intelligence? or is it the product of the Divine Intelligence?
We cannot hesitate between the two. Indeed the logic of facts has already
decided for us. (D. Greig
M. A.)
Import of faith in a Creator
When man looks out from himself upon the wonderful home in which
he is placed
upon the various orders of living things around him
upon the
solid earth which he treads
upon the heavens into which he gazes
with such
ever-varying impressions
by day and by night; when he surveys the mechanism of
his own bodily frame; when he turns his thought
as he can turn it
in upon
itself
and takes to pieces by subtle analysis the beautiful instrument which
places him in conscious relation to the universe around him; his first and last
anxiety is to account for the existence of all that thus interests him; he must
answer the question
How and why did this vast system of being come to be?
Science may unveil in nature regular modes of working
and name their laws. But
the great question still awaits her--the problem of the origin of the universe.
This question is answered by the first verse in the Bible: ¡§In the beginning
God created
¡¨ etc. And that answer is accepted by every believer in the
Christian Creed: ¡§I believe in one God
¡¨ etc.
I. WHAT IS MEANT
BY CREATION? The giving being to that which before was not. Creation is a
mystery eminently satisfactory to reason
but strictly beyond it. We men can do
much in the way of modifying existing matter
but we cannot create the minutest
particle of it. That God summoned it into being is a truth which we believe on
God¡¦s authority
but which we can never verify.
II. BELIEF IN THE
CREATION OF THE UNIVERSE OUT OF NOTHING IS THE ONLY ACCOUNT OF ITS ORIGIN WHICH
IS COMPATIBLE WITH BELIEF IN A PERSONAL AND MORAL GOD.
1. Men have conceived of the relation between the universe and a
higher power in four different ways. Either God is a creation of the world
that
is to say
of the thinking part of it; or God and the world are really
identical; or God and the world
although distinct
are co-existent; or God has
created the world out of nothing.
2. Again
belief in the creation of the universe by God out of nothing
naturally leads to belief in God¡¦s continuous providence; and providence
in
turn
considering the depth of man¡¦s moral misery
suggests redemption. If love
or goodness was the true motive for creation
it implies God¡¦s continuous
interest in created life.
3. Belief in creation
indeed
must govern the whole religious
thought of a consistent believer. It answers many a priori difficulties
as to the existence of miracle
since the one supreme inexplicable miracle
compared with which all others are insignificant
is already admitted.
4. Once more
belief in creation is of high moral value. It keeps a
man in his right place. ¡§It is He that hath made us
and not we ourselves.¡¨ At
first sight
man is insignificant when confronted with external nature. Yet we
know that this is not so. The heavens and the earth will pass away. But the
soul will still remain
face to face with God. (Canon Liddon.)
The Creator and the creation
I. THE WHOLE
TRINITY
each in His separate office
though all in unity
addressed themselves
to the work of creation.
1. The Holy Spirit brooded over the watery chaos.
2. The Son
the Lord Jesus Christ
was that power
or ¡§Arm of the
Lord
¡¨ by which the whole work was executed. ¡§In the beginning was the Word.¡¨
3. The Father¡¦s mind willed all
planned all
and did all.
II. God created
ONLY ¡§the heaven and the earth.¡¨ He provided a heaven
but He did not provide a
hell. That was provided
not for our world at all
but for the devil and his
angels.
III. If we ask WHY
God created this universe of ours
three purposes suggest themselves.
1. It was the expression and out-going of His wisdom
power
and
love.
2. It was for the sake of His noblest work
His creature
man.
3. The heaven and the earth were meant to be the scene of the
exhibition of His own dear Son. Remember
that marvellously grand as it was
that first creation was only a type and earnest of a better. (J. Vaughan
M.
A.)
The Creator and His work
I. THEN ATHEISM
IS A FOLLY. Atheism is proved absurd--
1. By the history of the creation of the world. It would be
impossible for a narrative to be clearer
more simple
or more divinely
authenticated than this of the creation. The very existence of things around us
is indisputable evidence of its reality.
2. By the existence of the beautiful world around us. The world
standing up around us in all its grandeur--adaptation--evidence of
design--harmony--is a most emphatic assertion of the Being of God. Every flower
is a denial of atheism. Every star is vocal with Deity.
3. By the moral convictions of humanity. There is probably not an
intelligent man in the wide universe
who does not believe in
and pay homage
to
some deity or other.
II. THEN PANTHEISM
IS AN ABSURDITY. We are informed by these verses that the world was a creation
and not a spontaneous
or natural emanation from a mysterious something only
known in the vocabulary of a sceptical philosophy. Thus the world must have had
a personal Creator
distinct and separate from itself.
III. THEN MATTER IS
NOT ETERNAL. ¡§In the beginning.¡¨ Thus it is evident that matter had a
commencement. It was created by Divine power. It had a birthday.
IV. THEN THE WORLD
WAS NOT THE RESULT OF A FORTUITOUS COMBINATION OF ATOMS. ¡§In the beginning God
created.¡¨ Thus the world was a creation. There was the exercise of supreme
intelligence. There was the expression in symbol of great thoughts
and also of
Divine sympathies.
V. THEN CREATION
IS THE OUTCOME OF SUPERNATURAL POWER. ¡§In the beginning God created.¡¨ There
must of necessity ever be much of mystery connected with this subject. Man was
not present to witness the creation
and God has only given us a brief and
dogmatic account of it. God is mystery. The world is a mystery. But there is
far less mystery in the Mosaic account of the creation than in any other
as it
is the most natural
the most likely
and truly the most scientific
as it
gives us an adequate cause for the effect. The re-creation of the soul is the
best explanation of the creation of the universe
and in fact of all the other
mysteries of God. (J. S.Exell
M. A.)
The theology of creation
Man naturally asks for some account of the world in which he
lives. Was the world always in existence? If not
how did it begin to be? Did
the sun make itself? These are not presumptuous questions. We have a right to
ask them--the right which arises from our intelligence. The steam engine did
not make itself; did the sun? In the text we find an answer to all our
questions.
I. THE ANSWER IS
SIMPLE. There is no attempt at learned analysis or elaborate exposition. A
child may understand the answer. It is direct
positive
complete. Could it
have been more simple? Try any other form of words
and see if a purer
simplicity be possible. Observe the value of simplicity when regarded as
bearing upon the grandest events. The question is not who made a house
but who
made a world
and not who made one world
but who made all worlds; and to this
question the answer is
God made them. There is great risk in returning a
simple answer to a profound inquiry
because when simplicity is not the last
result of knowledge
it is mere imbecility.
II. THE ANSWER IS
SUBLIME. God! God created!
1. Sublime because far reaching in point of time: in the beginning.
Science would have attempted a fact
religion has given a truth. If any
inquirer can fix a date
he is not forbidden to do so. Dates are for children.
2. Sublime because connecting the material with the spiritual. There
is
then
something more than dust in the universe. Every atom bears a
superscription. The wind is the breath of God. The thunder is a note from the
music of his speech.
3. Sublime
because revealing
as nothing else could have done
the
power and wisdom of the Most High.
III. THE ANSWER IS
SUFFICIENT. It might have been both simple and sublime
and yet not have
reached the point of adequacy. Draw a straight line
and you may describe it as
simple
yet who would think of calling it sublime? We must have simplicity
which reaches the point of sublimity
and sublimity which sufficiently covers
every demand of the case. The sufficiency of the answer is manifest: Time is a
drop of eternity; nature is the handiwork of God; matter is the creation of
mind; God is over all
blessed for evermore. This is enough. In proportion as
we exclude God from the operation
we increase difficulty. Atheism never
simplifies. Negation works in darkness. The answer of the text to the problem
of creation is simple
sublime
and sufficient
in relation--
1. To the inductions of geology.
2. To the theory of evolution.
Practical inferences:
1. If God created all things
then all things are under His
government.
2. Then the earth may be studied religiously.
3. Then it is reasonable that He should take an interest in nature.
(J. Parker
D. D.)
What we learn here about God
1. His being.
2. His eternity.
3. His omnipotence.
4. His absolute freedom.
5. His infinite wisdom.
6. His essential goodness. (J. White.)
A revelation of God and of nature
I. A REVELATION
OF GOD.
1. His name: names have meaning.
2. His nature: spirituality
personality.
3. His mode of existence: manifold unity.
II. A REVELATION
OF NATURE.
1. Matter not eternal.
2. The antiquity of the earth.
3. The order of creation. (Pulpit Analyst.)
Love in the fact of creation
I. WHAT IS
CREATION? Creation is a work of free condescension on the part of God. There
was a time when it was not
and God willed that it should be. It was by Him
called into existence out of nothing. It is not only not God
but it is not
Divine--partakes in no way of His essence
nor (except in one
its spiritual
department
where He has specially willed it) of His nature; has in itself no
principle of permanence
cannot uphold itself
but depends altogether for its
being
and well being
on the good pleasure of Him
whose Divine love created and
upholds it. The world is a standing proof of God¡¦s condescension--that He
lowers Himself to behold the things which are in heaven and in earth
which He
needeth not. Creation
viewed in its true light
is as really a proof of the
self-forgetting
self-humbling love of our God
as redemption; for in it He
left His glory which He had
the Father with the Son
and the Holy Spirit with
both
before the worlds began
and descended to converse with and move among
the works of His own hands; to launch the planets on their courses through
space
and uphold in them all things living by His ever-abiding Spirit.
II. WHY IS
CREATION? May we presume to ask
What moved Him who was perfect in Himself
who
needed nothing beyond Himself
whose character of love was fulfilled in the
unity of the Three Persons in the God-head--what moved Him to lower Himself to
the creation and upholding of matter
and of life organized in matter? We have
already attributed the act to free condescending love; but what love--love for
whom? Here again Scripture gives us an answer. ¡§The Father loveth the Son
and
hath given all things into His hand.¡¨ ¡§By Him (the Son) were all things
created
that are in heaven and that are in earth
visible and invisible--all
things were created by Him and for Him.¡¨ I hesitate not then in saying that all
creation was the result of the love of the Father for the Son; the result of
His Almighty will to carry forward
and to glorify
His Divine character of
love
by the glorification of His beloved and only-begotten Son. This world is
Christ¡¦s world--made by and made for Christ--made as the theatre whereon
to
all created beings
and even to the Father Himself
was to be shown forth the
glorious self-denying love of the Son of God. Thus the world is to the Christian
a fact in the very path and process of his faith
and hope
and love. Thus
creation is to him part of redemption; the first free act of love of his God
which provided for his being called into existence
as the next free act of
love provided for his being called to be a partaker of the Divine nature. (Dean
Alford.)
Creation
I. GOD. No
attempt made to prepare mind of reader for idea of God; as though every human
being had this naturally; and so they all have.
II. CREATED. God
made world out of nothing; then He must have absolute power over it and all in
it. Nothing can hurt those whom God loves
and protects. Events of world are
still in His hands. All must work for Him.
III. COURSE AND
PROGRESS OF CREATION¡¦S WORK.
1. Gradual
in measured stages
deliberate. But
observe
never
lingering or halting; no rest until complete. Each day has its work; and each
day¡¦s work
done for God
and as God appoints
has its reward. Result may not
always be seen; as seed is not seen unfolding beneath ground
yet as truly
growing there as when it shoots up green in face of day. So in a good man¡¦s
life. He looks onward.
2. Orderly. (C. P. Eden
M. A.)
Creation
The language of man follows things and imitates them; the Word of
God precedes and creates them. Man speaks because things are; but these are
because God hath spoken. Let Him speak again
and things will revert together
with man who speaks of them
to nothing. Let us be content to perceive in
creation a character which belongs only to God
and which distinguishes His
work from that of His creatures. The human mind works only with the materials
with which God supplies it; it observes
imitates
combines
but does not
create. The best painter in the world
composing the most beautiful picture
that ever proceeded from the hand of man
creates nothing: neither the canvas
nor the colours
nor the brushes
nor his own hands
nor even the conception of
his work
since that conception is the fruit of his genius
which he has not
given unto himself. Trace to the origin of each of the several things which
have combined to form this picture
and you will find that all the channels
from which they came
converge towards
and meet in the Creator
who is God. In
thus showing us from its first page that the visible world has had such a
wonderful beginning
the Bible informs us that it is also as a Creator that God
saves souls. He not only develops the natural dispositions of our hearts
but
creates in them new ones
¡§For we are labourers together with God¡¨; but
labourers working like the painter
with what God has given to us. We hear
read
seek
believe
pray
but even these come from God. ¡§For it is God which
worketh in you both to will and to do of His good pleasure¡¨; and if we seek the
principle of our salvation we shall find that we owe all to God from the
beginning
and from the beginning of the beginning. ¡§For we are His workmanship
created in Jesus unto good works
which God hath before ordained that we should
walk in them.¡¨ ¡§You have been taught in Christ
¡¨ writes St. Paul to the
Ephesians
¡§to put off the old man
to be renewed in the spirit of your mind
and to put on the new man
which after God is created in righteousness and true
holiness.¡¨ ¡§In Jesus Christ neither circumcision availeth anything
nor
uncircumcision
but a new creature.¡¨ Thus speaks the New Testament. The Old
uses the same language. Not only does David
rising from his fall
pray in
these words by the Spirit: ¡§Create in me a clean heart
O God
and renew a
right spirit within me¡¨ (Psalms 51:12); but all the Lord¡¦s
dealings towards the people of Israel
that type of the future Church
are
compared by Isaiah to a creation--¡§I am the Lord
your Holy One
the Creator of
Israel
your Isaiah 43:15). If He alternately deals
out to them good and badfortune--He creates. ¡§I am the Lord
and there is none
else. I form the light
and create darkness: I make peace
and create evil: I
the Lord
do all these things¡¨ (Isaiah 45:6-7). If He tries them for a
time by chastisingthem through the hands of their enemies
He creates: ¡§Behold
I have created the smith that bloweth the coals in the fire
and that bringeth
forth an instrument of destruction for his work¡¨ (Isaiah 54:16). If He raises up prophets
to them
He creates: ¡§I create the fruit of the lips; Peace
peace
to him that
is far off
and to him that is near¡¨ (Isaiah 57:19); and if ultimately He give
to that people
after many vicissitudes
happier days and an eternal rest
He
will create: ¡§For
behold
I create new heavens and a new earth: but be ye glad
and rejoice forever in that which I create; for
behold
I create Jerusalem a
rejoicing¡¨ (Isaiah 65:17-18). The creation of the
world affords us a new lesson as to the manner in which God acts in the
dispensation of grace. There again
all that God makes is good
and very good;
what is evil proceeds from another source. For all that is good and holy
let
us ascribe the glory to God; for what is evil let us accuse ourselves. This
doctrine
too
is necessary in order that you should not make a false
application of what you have just heard respecting the sovereignty of God. He
acts as Creator
we should say in things which belong to His government
but He
only uses this sovereign power for good; He only gives birth to good thoughts
holy desires and dispositions
consistent with salvation. God creates
but how
does He create? At first view we only see here the sovereign Lord
alone at
first in His eternity
alone afterwards in the work of creation. But a more
deliberate contemplation leads us to discern in this singleness a certain
mysterious union of persons previously hidden in the depths of the Divine
nature
and displaying itself at the creation
as it was to be manifested at a
later period in the redemption of our race. And have you the Father
the Son
and the Holy Ghost? The Three unite in the creation of the world; they unite in
the redemption of man; are they also united within you? Are you born of the
Father
and become His children? Are you washed in the blood
of the Son
and
become members of His body? Are you baptized with the Spirit
and become His
temples? Ponder upon these things; for it is not a vain thing for you
because
it is your life. Finally
God creates
but for what purpose? does He only wish
to spread before you an enchanting exhibition? No
He has nobler designs. The
Lord has created all things for His glory
and His first object is to render
visible the invisible things hidden within Himself
by giving them a body
and
if one may so speak
by exhibiting them in the form of flesh. (A. Monod
D.
D.)
Chance cannot explain order in creation
How often might a man
after he had jumbled a set of letters in a
bag
fling them upon the ground before they would fall into an exact poem
yea
or so much as make a good discourse in prose! And may not a little book be as
easily made by chance as this great volume of the world? How long might a man
be in sprinkling colours upon a canvas with a careless hand before they could
happen to make the exact picture of a man? And is a man easier made by chance
than his picture? How long might twenty thousand blind men
which should be
sent out from the several remote parts of England
wander up and down before
they would all meet in Salisbury Plains
and fall into rank and file in the
exact order of an army? And yet this is much more easy to be imagined than how
the innumerable blind parts of matter should rendezvous themselves into a
world. (Archbishop Tillotson.)
Chance not creative
Athanasius Kircher
the celebrated German astronomer
had an
acquaintance whom he much esteemed
but who was unfortunately infected by
atheistical principles
and denied the very existence of a God. Kircher
sincerely desirous to rescue his friend from his mistaken and ruinous opinion
determined to try to convince him of his error upon his own principles of
reasoning. He first procured a globe of the heavens
handsomely decorated
and
of conspicuous size
and placed it in a situation in his study where it would
be immediately observed. He then called upon his friend with an invitation to
visit him
which was readily responded to
and on his arrival he was shown into
the study. It happened exactly as Kircher had planned. His friend no sooner
observed it than he inquired whence it had come
and to whom it belonged.
¡§Shall I tell you
my friend
¡¨ said Kircher
¡§that it belongs to no one; that
it was never made by anyone
but came here by mere chance?¡¨ ¡§That
¡¨ replied the
atheist
¡§is impossible; you jest.¡¨ This was Kircher¡¦s golden opportunity
and
he promptly and wisely availed himself of it. ¡§You will not
with good reason
believe that this small globe which you see before you originated in mere
chance
and yet you will contend that those vast heavenly bodies
of which this
is but a faint diminutive resemblance
came into existence without either
order
design
or a creation!¡¨ His friend was first confounded
then convinced
and
ultimately abandoning all his former scepticisms
he gladly united with
all who reverence and love God in acknowledging the glory and adoring the
majesty of the great Creator of the heavens and earth and all their host.
Order no proof of evolution
His (Professor Huxley¡¦s) conclusion is an hypothesis evolved from
an hypothesis. To see that this is indeed the case
let us put his argument in
syllogistic form. It is as follows: Wherever we have an ascending series of
animals with modifications of structure rising one above another
the later
forms must have evolved themselves from the earlier. In the case of these
fossil horses we have such a series
therefore the theory of evolution is
established universally for all organized and animal life. Now
even if we
admit his premises
everyone must see that the conclusion is far too sweeping.
It ought to have been confined to the horses of which he was treating. But
passing that
let us ask where is the proof of the major premise? Indeed
that
premise is suppressed altogether
and he nowhere attempts to show that the
existence of an ascending series of animals
with modifications of structure
ascending
one above another
is an infallible indication that the higher
members of the series evolved themselves out of the lower. The existence of a
series does not necessarily involve the evolution of the higher members of it
from the lower. The steps of a stair rise up one above another
but we cannot
reason that therefore the whole staircase has developed itself out of the
lowest step. It may be possible to arrange all the different modifications of
the steam engine
from its first and crudest form up to its latest and most
complete organized structure
in regular gradation; but that would not prove
that the last grew out of the first. No doubt in such a case there has been
progress--no doubt there has been development too--but it was progress guided
and development directed by a presiding and intervening mind. All present
experience is against this major premise which Huxley has so quietly taken for
granted. It is a pure conjecture. I will go so far as to say that even if he
should find in the geologic records all the intervening forms he desires
these
will not furnish evidence that the higher members of the series rose out of the
lower by a process of evolution. The existence of a graduated series is one
thing; the growth of the series out of its lowest member is quite another. (W.
M. Taylor
D. D.)
The creation
I. In the first
place
THE OBJECT OF THIS INSPIRED COSMOGONY
OR ACCOUNT OF THE WORLD¡¦S ORIGIN
IS NOT SCIENTIFIC BUT RELIGIOUS. Hence it was to be expected
that while
nothing contained in it could ever be found really and in the long run to
contradict science
the gradual progress of discovery might give occasion for
apparent and temporary contradictions.
II. Then again
in
the second place
let it be observed that THE ESSENTIAL FACTS IN THIS DIVINE
RECORD are
--the recent date assigned to the existence of man on the earth
the
previous preparation of the earth for his habitation
the gradual nature of the
work
and the distinction and succession of days during its progress.
III. And
finally
in the third place
let it be borne in mind that the sacred narrative of the
creation is evidently
in its highest character
MORAL
SPIRITUAL
AND
PROPHETICAL. The original relation of man
as a responsible being
to his
Maker
is directly taught; his restoration from moral chaos to spiritual beauty
is figuratively represented; and as a prophecy
it has an extent of meaning
which will be fully unfolded only when ¡§the times of the restitution of all
things¡¨ (Acts 3:2-11 have arrived.
Conclusion:--The first verse
then
contains a very general announcement; in
respect of time
without date
--in respect of space
without limits. (R. S.
Candlish
D. D.)
On the existence and character of God
I. THE ARGUMENT
FOUNDED ON THE PRINCIPLE OF CAUSATION. The belief in causation is one of the
primary convictions of the human mind. It will be unnecessary for the purposes
of this argument to discuss its origin. It is also certain that this conviction
is not the result of any conscious process of reasoning. We acquiesce in it
because we cannot help doing so. Anyone may satisfy himself that this is the
case
by trying whether it is possible for him to believe that any particular
phenomenon has come into existence without a cause. One of these primary
beliefs is that every phenomenon must owe its existence to a cause adequate to
produce it. This proposition therefore constitutes one of the highest
rectitudes which is attainable by man
and lies at the foundation of all
reasoned truth. Such being the case
it becomes necessary to determine what we
mean by the term ¡§cause
¡¨ not what philosophers mean by it
but what is the
idea which the common sense of mankind attaches to it? Unless we are under the
bias of some particular theory
we invariably associate the idea of efficiency
with that of cause. We may frequently mistake non-causes for causes
but
efficiency
i.e.
power to produce the effect
is the fundamental idea
which underlies the conception of cause in the minds of ordinary men. This
being so
the following important consequences follow.
1. Whatever exists in the effect
must exist either actively or
potentially in the cause.
2. The cause of one effect may be the effect of some preceding
cause.
3. Various things
which philosophers and men of science have
designated causes
are not causes
but necessary conditions of the existence of
a particular thing. Thus space is the necessary condition of the existence of
extended bodies
but is certainly not the cause of their existence. In a
similar manner
in the language of the Darwinian theory
the environment of a thing
is frequently spoken of as its cause. It may be the necessary condition of the
existence of a thing in that particular form
but to designate it its cause is
an inaccuracy of thought. The truth is
necessary conditions limit the action
of causes
and may direct their activity into this or that channel; but to
treat them as causes is absurd
for they neither do
nor can produce anything.
4. Law is not a cause. The reader¡¦s attention cannot be too
carefully directed to this fact
for
in scientific language
law is habitually
used as the equivalent of force
and the greatest confusion of thought has been
the result; nay
more
it is frequently personified even by those who refuse to
allow that we have any means of knowing that the First Cause of the universe is
a personal Being. Thus even scientific men are constantly in the habit of
affirming that the laws of nature effect this or that; and that feeble man is
unable to resist their overwhelming power. The truth is
that while the forces
of nature effect much
the laws of nature can effect nothing. What are the laws
of nature? They are merely expressions of the definite order of the occurrence
of phenomena. I must now recur to one more point above referred to
as fraught
with consequences of extreme importance. I have observed that the very
conception of an efficient cause (and an efficient cause is the only one which
satisfies the idea of real causation)
involves the consequence that it must
contain within itself
either actively or potentially
all the effects of which
it is the cause; otherwise
such portions of the effects which are not inherent
in the cause must be self-produced
which is a self-contradiction
or be
produced by the energy of an independent Creator
a conclusion which the theist
will readily accept. This being so
all the effects
or in other words
the
phenomena
which exist in the universe
must exist either actively or
potentially in its first cause
i.e.
in God. Now
one of the phenomena
of the universe is intelligence. Intelligence therefore must exist in God.
Another of its phenomena is the moral nature of man
and the principles of
morality founded on the moral law. God therefore must be a moral Being. Another
of its phenomena is free agency as it exists in man. The first cause of man (i.e.
God)
must therefore be a free agent. Another of its phenomena is will
for it exists
in man. Volition therefore must exist in God. Another of its phenomena is
personality
for it exists in man. Personality therefore must exist in God.
Another of its phenomena is that its forces act in accordance with invariable
law
from which action the order of the universe springs. Invariable law
therefore must be an expression of the Divine will
and the love of order must
exist in God. This argument may be pursued to a much greater length; but this
will be sufficient to indicate its character.
II. THE ARGUMENT
FOUNDED ON THE ORDER OF THE UNIVERSE. This argument proves that its first cause
(i.e.
God)
must be possessed of intelligence. It is one of the instinctive beliefs of our
minds
when our rational powers have attained their full development
that
whenever we contemplate an orderly arrangement of a complicated character
we
instinctively draw the inference that it denotes the presence of intelligence.
We feel that this is an inference which we cannot help drawing
for order and
intelligence are in our minds mutually correlated. Observe
I make this
affirmation under the qualification that we cannot help drawing this inference
when our rational powers have attained to their full development. I do so
because I maintain that the ideal of human nature and the testimony which its
constitution affords to the realities of things
are to be found in the perfect
and not in the imperfect man. The opponents of theism dispute the correlation
of order and intelligence on two grounds. First
they affirm that the
conception is an anthropomorphic one
inapplicable to the works of nature.
Secondly
that the production of all the phenomena of the universe by the
unintelligent forces of nature
acting in conformity with laws from which they
are incapable of varying
is an adequate account of these orderly arrangements.
With respect to the tact of these objections to the validity of our argument
I
answer--First
that our belief in this correlation between order and
intelligence is not a relative
but an absolute belief
embracing all things
all places
and all times. Secondly
that even if the objection were valid
it
makes no attempt to propound an alternative theory of the origin of these
orderly arrangements. Thirdly
the affirmation that the alternative theory
viz.
that all existing phenomena have been evolved by the action of the
unintelligent forces of nature
in conformity with invariable law
--affords an
adequate account of the existence of this order
contradicts alike our reason
and our experience. First
it contradicts our reason. What
I ask
is the
conclusion which we draw
when we contemplate an orderly arrangement of a
complicated character? I answer that we cannot help inferring that it has
originated in intelligence. If the suggestion is made
that it is due to what
is commonly called chance
we reject it with scorn. Scientific unbelief
I
know
affirms that there is no such thing as chance. Let me adduce one or two
simple illustrations. Suppose a traveller had met in some foreign country a
construction (it is my misfortune
and not my fault
that I can only express
myself in language which has the appearance of assuming the point at issue)
which on examination he found to bear a striking resemblance to the machinery
in the arsenal at Woolwich
and that no one could tell him how it had
originated. Further
that he succeeded in setting it in motion; and that after
carefully observing it
he discovered that all its movements took place in a
constantly recurring definite order. Let us also further suppose
that on
making inquiry how it got there
he was told that during some distant period of
the past
a number of the unintelligent forces of nature
after a prolonged
struggle
had succeeded in evolving this singular result. Would he
I ask
consider this an adequate account of its origin
or view it as an attempt to
impose on his credulity? Or let us take a case nearer home
the library of the
British Museum for example
or its collections of minerals or fossils. On
walking round them he could observe that their contents were arranged in a
certain definite order
yet he is entirely ignorant how they got arranged in
this order. But he would scorn the idea
if it were suggested to him
that
these arrangements were the result of the concurrence of a number of
unintelligent forces
and would without a moment¡¦s hesitation draw the
conclusion that they were due to the agency of intelligence. Of this he would
feel as certain as of his own existence. These instances will be equally
suitable as illustrations of the argument from adaptation. But it will be
needless to multiply examples. I therefore ask if in these
and in an
indefinite number of similar cases
we esteem this conclusion to be one of the
most unquestionable of certitudes
why should the inference become
inconclusive
when we observe similar arrangements in the phenomena of nature
the only difference being that the latter are on a vaster scale
and in an
endless variety of complication? It follows
therefore
that the alternative
suggested by unbelief contradicts the convictions of the reason of an
overwhelming majority of civilized men. Secondly
the alternative theory
derives no support from experience. No one has ever witnessed an orderly
arrangement issue from the meeting together of a number of the unintelligent
forces of nature. If on throwing up twelve dice an equal number of times
they
invariably fall in the same order
the conclusion is inevitable--they are
loaded. In a similar manner the conclusion is equally inevitable
when we
contemplate the orderly arrangements of the universe. They are loaded with a
Divine intelligence.
III. THE ARGUMENT
FOUNDED ON THE INNUMERABLE CORRELATIONS AND ADAPTATIONS WHICH EXIST IN THE
UNIVERSE
COMMONLY CALLED THE ARGUMENT FROM FINAL CAUSES. The argument from
adaptation may be best exhibited under two heads. First
those adaptations
which denote plan
or the realization of an idea through a gradual course of
evolution; and
secondly
those adaptations by which a particular result is
produced
and which alone render its production possible. To take an example of
each. The human hand
if contemplated as a piece of mechanism
is one of the
most wonderful of contrivances. We all know the innumerable and the delicate
functions which it is capable of executing. It consists of a number of parts
marvellously adjusted and correlated together
which
if any one of them had
been different from what it is
or had been differently correlated one to the
other
the mechanism in question would either never have come into existence
or it would have failed to produce the results which it is now capable of
accomplishing. This serves as an illustration of the argument from both kinds
of adaptation above referred to. This marvellous instrument
as it exists in
man
is found in embryo in the fore feet of the lowest form of vertebrate
animals. Its parts are all found there
yet in such a form that they are
utterly unable to produce the results which they do in man. They exist there in
type only
or idea
of which the human hand is the realization. Before it has
attained to this realization it has appeared in different orders of animals
each time making a nearer approach to the realization which the idea has
received in the hand of man
and each time correlated to a corresponding
advance in mind. Throughout the whole series of these improvements in the
instrument
we recognize what in ordinary language we designate a plan
or
the
gradual realization of an idea
commencing in a very rudimentary form
and
gradually attaining to higher stages of perfection
until it has culminated in
the human hand. A process of this kind
when we witness it under ordinary
circumstances
we designate a plan. But a plan implies the presence of
intelligence. When
therefore
we see such plans carried out in nature
which
only differ from ordinary ones in the multitude of the adaptations and
correlations which are necessary to enable them to become realities
we may
surely draw the inference that they must have originated in intelligence. But
the hand forms an apt illustration of the other kind of adaptation. I have
already observed that it is admitted on all hands to be a marvellous piece of
mechanism
so constituted as to be capable of executing an almost endless
variety of functions. The unbeliever
however
asks us to believe that this
affords no proof that it has originated in intelligence. But if he were to fall
in with an instrument devoid of life
which was capable of executing only ball
of the functions which are performed by the human hand
he would not only infer
that it had had a contriver
but he would be loud in the praises of his
ingenuity. Why then
I ask
should the contemplation of the one piece of
mechanism afford unquestionable evidence of the presence of an intelligent
contriver
and the contemplation of that of which it is the copy
only far more
elaborate and perfect
afford none? The reason why the opponent of theism
accepts the one inference
and rejects the other
must be left to him to
explain. I will only adduce one further illustration
viz.
our faculty of
hearing
because this is effected by three sets of adjustments
each of which
is entirely independent of the others; and each of which consists of a number
of complicated correlations. The first of these adjustments consists of the
vocal organs
which form a musical instrument of a far more complicated
character than has ever been invented by man. Be it observed also that this
musical instrument is so constituted
that it subserves a multitude of purposes
beyond the production of noise. Yet exquisite as this instrument is
it never
would have produced a single sound unless it had been correlated to the
atmospheric air
or the air to it
in such a manner that its waves should
correspond with the different movements of the instrument. These correlations
in order theft they may produce musical sounds
must be of the most complicated
character; and yet the one set are absolutely independent of the other. Yet
both these sets of marvellous adjustments and correlations would fail to
produce a single sound
except for the existence of another highly complicated
set of correlations and adjustments
independent of both
viz.
the human ear
adapted to receive the impressions of the waves of sound
the auric nerves
and
the brain to perceive them
and the human mind to interpret their meaning. Each
of these is composed of a number of the most complicated adjustments; and
unless the entire series
of which all three sets of adaptations are composed
had been mutually correlated the one to the other
with the utmost care
hearing would have been impossible
and the remaining complicated adjustments
would have existed in vain. I have only adduced these two examples for the
purpose of illustrating the nature of the argument. The reader must estimate
its force
remembering only that the universe is admitted on all hands to be
full of similar adjustments
in numbers which surpass the powers of the human
intellect even to conceive. What then must be the conjoint force of the whole?
Let me draw the inference
Reason affirms that the theory that these
adaptations
adjustments
and correlations
with which every part of the
universe abounds
have originated in an intelligence which possesses a power
adequate to their production
is an account of their origin which satisfies the
requirements alike of common sense and a sound philosophy; or to employ the
metaphor used above
these adjustments
adaptations
and correlations proclaim
the fact that the forces of the universe are everywhere loaded with
intelligence. This argument acquires an additional conclusiveness
the amount
of which it is difficult to estimate
from considerations derived from the
mathematical doctrine of chances. I have already observed that these
adjustments and correlations are conditioned on a number of the forces of the
universe concurring in meeting together at the same time and place; and that if
any one of them had failed to do so
the result produced by their correlation
would have either not existed at all
or would have been a different one from
that which would have been produced by the conjoint action of the whole. Now
it is obvious that if these adaptations
etc.
have not been produced by a
superintending intelligence
they can only have been the result of that
fortuitous concurrence of forces which we have above described as constituting
what is popularly designated chance. This being so
the production of those
sets of complicated correlations
which I have above described as necessary for
the production of that infinite variety of sounds which the ear is capable of
distinguishing
by the fortunate meeting together of a number of independent
forces at the same time and place
in accordance with the mathematical doctrine
of chances
could only be expressed by a fraction
which
if its numerator is
unity
its denominator would be some number followed by an array of ciphers
the length of which I must leave to the reader to conjecture. But this is only
an inconsiderable part of the difficulty which besets the theory which I am
controverting. This process would have to be repeated in the case of every
independent correlation in the universe; and to get at the combined result
these fractions would have to be multiplied together; and the result would be a
fraction whose numerator is unity
having for its denominator some number
followed by an array of ciphers continued ad infinitum. According
then
to the mathematical doctrine of chances
it is an improbability
amounting to
an impossibility
that these adaptations and correlations can have been the
result of a fortuitous concurrence of the unintelligent forces of nature. They
must then originate in intelligence. The theory which opponents of theism ask
us to accept
as affording a rational account of the origin of those
adaptations and correlations with which the universe is full
is this. The
forces of the universe have gone on energizing in conformity with laws from
which they cannot deviate during the eternal ages of the past; and in their
course have passed through every possible combination. The unstable ones have
perished
and the stable ones have survived
and by means of this
ever-reiterated process have at length emerged the order and adaptations of that
portion of the universe which is destitute of life
without the intervention of
intelligence. How these forces originated
and became endowed with their
specific qualities
which have rendered them capable of effecting such
marvellous results
we are asked to believe to be a secret into which the
limitations of the human mind render it impossible for us to penetrate
and
which must therefore remain forever unknown. But with respect to the process by
which animated existence has been evolved
its language is less vague. Its
theory is as follows. The original germs of life
the existence of which it is
compelled to postulate
and which
in a manner wholly unaccounted for
became
possessed of a most convenient power of generating their like
with a number of
inconsiderable variations
produced a progeny greatly in excess of their means
of subsistence. Hence originated among them a struggle for life
with the
effect that the weaker living forms have perished
and the stronger
i.e.
those
better adapted to their environment
have survived. This struggle has been
continued during an indefinite number of ages. This theory is called the theory
of natural selection
or the survival of the fittest in the struggle for
existence; and modern atheistic unbelief propounds it
aided by another theory
viz.
that of sexual selection
and a third
viz.
that of the accumulation of
habits through a long succession of transmissions from remote ancestors
which
have gradually become fixed
as an adequate account of the origin of all the
adaptations and correlations which are presented in the existing forms of
animal and vegetable life. This theory utterly breaks down
as affording even a
specious account of the origin of these adaptations and correlations at several
points. First
it fails to account for the origin of life
or to show that it
is possible to produce living out of non-living matter. Until it can effect
this
it is simply useless for the purposes of atheism. Strange to say
unbelief is now compelled to live by faith. It is confident that the discovery
will be made hereafter. Secondly
it fails to give any account of the origin of
those qualities
which the original germs of life must have possessed
in order
that a starting point may be found for the course of evolution which it
propounds. Thirdly
it assumes the concurrence of a multitude of fortunate
chances (I use the word ¡§chance¡¨ in the sense above described)
so numerous as
to approximate to the infinite
of what common sense and reason refuse to
believe to be possible
and which hopelessly conflicts with the mathematical
doctrine of chances and probabilities. Fourthly
it demands an interval of time
for the carrying out of this vast process of evolution
which although
abstractedly possible
other branches of science refuse to concede to it as
lying within the existing order of things. Fifthly
it utterly fails to bridge
over that profound gulf which separates the moral from the material universe
the universe of freedom from the universe of necessity. All that it can urge
with respect to the origin of life and of free agency
is that it hopes to be
able to propound a theory at some future time which shall be able to account
for these phenomena. Sixthly
the theory in question
including the Darwinian
theory of the production of the entire mass of organisms that have existed in
the past
and exist in the present
by the sole agency of natural selection
without the intervention of intelligence
is
in fact
a restatement in a
disguised form of the old theory of the production of all the adaptations and
correlations in the universe
by the concurrence of an infinite number of
fortunate chances--a theory which contradicts the primary intuitions of our
intellectual being. Seventhly
as a fact
the recorded observations by mankind
for the last
say
four thousand years
show no instance of evolution of one
species from another
but display variation
not infinite but limited
and
recurrent to the original form. Eighthly
as a fact
geology (Palaeontology)
shows the same absence of such evolution and of indefinite variation. Ninthly
all the ascertained facts point only to creation by a plan
or in accordance
with a rule
which permits variability within discoverable limits
and requires
adaptation
and therefore furnishes no evidence of evolution of species. Let me
set before the reader in two sentences the result of the foregoing reasonings.
The atheistic theory of evolution utterly breaks down as affording a rational
account of the origin of adaptations and correlations with which every region
of the universe abounds. Consequently the theistic account of their origin
which satisfies alike sound philosophy and common sense
is the only adequate
one; or
in other words
they have originated in an intelligence which is possessed
of a power adequate to their production.
IV. THE EVIDENCE
WHICH IS FURNISHED BY CONSCIENCE AND THE MORAL NATURE OF MAN. Two universes
exist beside each other. One
in which the laws of necessity dominate; the
other in which free agency is the essential factor. The first may be designated
the material
and the second the moral universe. These are separated from each
other by a gulf which no theory of evolution can bridge over. When the first
free agent came into existence
a power essentially different from any which
had preceded it was introduced into that universe
where necessary law had
hitherto reigned supreme. The question therefore presents itself
and demands
solution: How did it originate? It could not have produced itself. It therefore
issued from a cause adequate to produce it. That cause must ultimately resolve
itself into the first cause of the universe
that is
God. From this follow the
following conclusions--Man is a free agent; therefore God must be a free agent.
Man¡¦s free agency is limited by conditions; but God is not limited by
conditions. Therefore His free agency is more absolute and perfect than the
free agency of man. A moral universe exists. God is the cause of its existence.
Therefore the essential principles of morality
as affirmed by conscience
and
witnessed by the moral nature of man
must exist in God. Personality exists in
man as an essential portion of his moral nature; therefore
He who framed man
i.e.
God
must be a person
who is at the same time the Creator
the Upholder
and the moral Governor of the universe which He has created. Such are the
inferences which we are entitled to draw by the aid of our reason respecting
the existence and the moral character of God. (Preb. Row
M. A.)
Pantheism
We object to this system as follows.
1. Its idea of God is self-contradictory
since it makes Him
infinite
yet consisting only of the finite; absolute
yet existing in
necessary relation to the universe; supreme
yet shut up to a process of
self-evolution and dependent for self-consciousness on man; without
self-determination
yet the cause of all that is.
2. Its assumed unity of substance is not only without proof
but it
directly contradicts our intuitive judgments. These testify that we are not
parts and particles of God
but distinct personal subsistences.
3. It assigns no sufficient cause for that fact of the universe
which is highest in rank
and therefore most needs explanation
namely
the
existence of personal intelligences. A substance which is itself unconscious
and under the law of necessity
cannot produce beings who are self-conscious
and free.
4. It therefore contradicts the affirmations of our moral and
religious natures by denying man¡¦s freedom and responsibility; by making God to
include in Himself all evil as well as all good; and by precluding all prayer
worship
and hope of immortality.
5. Our intuitive conviction of the existence of a God of absolute
perfection compels us to conceive of God as possessed of every highest quality
and attribute of men
and therefore
especially
of that which constitutes the
chief dignity of the human spirit
its personality. (A. H. Strong
D. D.)
The end of God in creation
I. LET US FIRST
EXPLAIN WHAT WE MEAN BY THE END OF GOD IN CREATION. It will be seen at once
that an ultimate end
or that for which all other ends in the series exist
and
from which they derive their importance
is in the mind of the agent his chief
end. It is contended by some that the same series of subordinate ends may have
more than one ultimate end
of which one may be chief
and the others inferior
ends. This was the opinion of Edwards. He says: ¡§Two different ends may be both
ultimate ends
and yet not be chief ends. They may be both valued for their own
sake
and both sought in the same work or acts
and yet one valued more highly
and sought more than another. Thus a man may go a journey to obtain two
different benefits or enjoyments
both which may be agreeable to him in
themselves considered
and so both may be what he values on their own account
and seeks for their own sake; and yet one may be much more agreeable than the
other; and so be what he sets his heart chiefly upon
and seeks most after in
his going a journey. Thus a man may go a journey partly to obtain the
possession and enjoyment of a bride that is very dear to him
and partly to
gratify his curiosity in looking in a telescope
or some new invented and
extraordinary optic glass. Both may be ends that he seeks in his journey
and
the one not properly subordinate
or in order to another. One may not depend on
another
and therefore both may be ultimate ends; but yet the obtaining his
beloved bride may be his chief end
and the benefit of the optic glass his
inferior end. The former may be what he sets his heart most upon
and so be properly
the chief end of his journey.¡¨ Our view differs somewhat from that of Edwards
upon this point. As these different objects are to be obtained by the same
course of action
or by the same series of subordinate ends
we believe it
would be speaking more correctly to represent them as forming one compound
ultimate end
rather than two distinct ultimate ends. Again: The ends or
purposes of intelligent beings are divided into subjective and objective ends.
The subjective end has reference to the feelings and desires of the agent or
being
which are to be gratified by the selection and accomplishment of the
objective end. It consists in the gratification of these feelings and desires.
The objective end is the thing to be done or brought to pass
and to the accomplishment
of which the agent is prompted by these feelings
affections
or desires. It is
not the subjective end of God in creating the universe that we seek. We know
this must have been based in the perfections of His character; it must have
been for the gratification of His infinite benevolence
His boundless love
that He adopted and spake into being the present system of things. But there
must be some objective end toward which He is impelled by His benevolence and
love
and for the accomplishment of which the present system was caused to
exist. It is this objective end that we are endeavouring to ascertain.
II. WE PROCEED TO
POINT OUT WHAT WE CONSIDER GOD¡¦S END IN CREATION TO HAVE BEEN. And here we
premise that whatever this end was
it was something in the order of time
future; that is
something yet to be obtained or accomplished. It would be
absurd to suppose a being to adopt and carry out a plan to obtain a good
or to
accomplish an end which was already obtained or accomplished. We are now prepared
for the general statement that
according to our view
the end of God in
creation is not to be found in Himself--that God is not His own end. The
differences between Edwards and ourself upon this point may be traced mainly to
a distinction which he has omitted to make
but which we deem of great
importance. We mean the distinction which exists between the display of the
attributes and perfections of God
and the effect produced by that display upon
the mind of the beholder. These attributes and perfections belong to God; their
display is the act of God; but the impression made upon the mind of another
by
this display
forms no part of God; it is not the act of God
but the result of
that act; it is an effect which was not produced
nor does it exist in the mind
of God
but which was produced and exists in the mind of the creature. The
importance of this distinction will be made apparent hereafter. That God could
not have been His own end in creation
we argue from the infinite fulness of
His nature. We can conceive of but one way in which a being can become his own
objective end in anything he does
and that is by supposing that he is
destitute of something of which he feels the needs
and consequently desires
for himself. To illustrate: Take the scholar who pursues with diligence his
studies; he may do this because he delights in knowledge
and his ultimate
objective end may be an increase of knowledge; or he may do it because
knowledge will render him more worthy of esteem. In either case
the ultimate end
is to be found in himself
and in both the idea of defect on the part of the
agent is prominent. Were his knowledge already perfect
there would be no need
that he should study to increase it. Now until some defect is found to exist in
God--until it can be shown that He does not possess
and has not from eternity
possessed
infinite fulness; that there is in His case some personal want
unsupplied
it is impossible to show that God is His own end in creation. But
it may be well to dwell more at large upon this part of the subject.
1. God¡¦s own happiness could not be His ultimate end in creation. It
will be borne in mind
that the ultimate end is something in the future
something yet to be accomplished. God¡¦s happiness can be made His end in
creation in only two ways--by increasing it
or by continuing it
But this
happiness can never be increased
for it is already perfect in kind
and
infinite in degree. And the only way in which the continuance of this happiness
can be made God¡¦s end in creation is by supposing it necessary order to the
continued gratification of His benevolent feelings. While the feelings of God¡¦s
heart are fully gratified He must be happy; and we admit that His failing to
accomplish any purpose
and thus failing to gratify these feelings
would
disappoint and render Him unhappy. So that the continued gratification of these
feelings
and thus the continuance of His happiness
was undoubtedly an end of
God in creation; but
as we have seen
this was His subjective
and not His
objective end. We perceive
then
that God¡¦s happiness
either in its increase
or continuance
is not the end for which we seek.
2. God¡¦s attributes
natural or moral
could not have been His end
in creation. The only ways in which we can conceive the attributes of God to be
His end in creation
are to increase them
to exercise them
or to display
them. The first could not have been His end
for the increase of attributes
already infinite is impossible. It will be seen that Edwards makes the exercise
of God¡¦s infinite attributes a thing desirable in itself
and one of His ends
in creation. If we understand him
he teaches that God exerted His infinite
power and wisdom in creation for the sake of exerting them; their exercise was
in itself excellent
and one ultimate object or end which Deity had in view in
exerting them
was that they might be exerted. That is
the exercise itself
and the end of that exercise
are the same thing. To show the absurdity of this
position
we remark--
1. The attributes of God are most wonderfully displayed in the work
of creation. His power and wisdom are everywhere conspicuous. So
likewise
the
moral excellencies of His character are written in sunbeams upon the works of
His hand: and to minds not darkened by sin
these excellencies stand out in
bold relief. Now a display of this character must produce a powerful effect
upon intelligent mind; and upon the supposition that the mind is perfectly
formed and rightly attuned
the effect must be blessed indeed. The result to
which we come
then
is
that the display of the Divine perfections would
produce an effect upon mind
perfectly organized and undisturbed by adverse
influences
which would cause the recipient to admire and love the Lord his God
with all his heart
mind
and strength; and this effect would be limited only
by his capacity.
2. There is another display or exhibition secured by
or consequent
upon
the work of creation
viz.
that of the attributes
both natural and
moral
of the creatures themselves.
3. There is still another effect secured by the work of creation
and the display consequent upon
it
viz.
that produced ¡§upon a being by the
display of his own powers
attributes
or qualities. These he becomes
acquainted with by consciousness
and by a careful observation of their
workings in various directions. The impression which these attributes of self
must make upon the mind of self
provided this mind is perfect in its
organization
and undisturbed by adverse influences
will be in exact
proportion to the worth of self in the scale of being. This is self-love as
distinguished from selfishness; which is self-love overleaping its boundaries
or overflowing its banks. We have arrived
then
at the following result
viz.
that the effect which the display of character consequent upon the work of
creation is calculated to produce upon perfect mind
is admiration of love
toward
and delight in God
to the full extent of the powers of the creature
and love to self
and all creature intelligences
measured by their worth in the
scale of being. In other words
it is entire conformity to the moral law
which
consists in loving God with all the soul
mind
and strength
and our neighbour
as ourself. This is the result of the action of perfect mind in the direction
of perfection itself
it is easy to perceive that perfect bliss
happiness
or
delight midst inhere in
or constitute a part of such action--and this
not
merely in the sense of art effect
but that it must be woven into its very
texture
so as to form a part of its web and woof. This effect is denominated
holiness; and as it is produced in the mind of the creature
and not in the
mind of God (who was perfectly and infinitely holy before creation began)
we
call it creature holiness
i.e.
holiness belonging to the creature; and
the happiness which inheres therein and forms a part of it is
for the same
reason
creature happiness. The production of this effect upon the minds of
intelligent creatures
we believe to have been God¡¦s end in creation--that end
without which the universe would not have existed. This position thrown into
the form of a proposition would run thus: God¡¦s last end in creation was to
secure the greatest possible amount of creature holiness
and of that happiness
which inheres in and forms a part of such holiness. Or thus: The ultimate
objective end for which God created the universe
was the production of the
greatest possible amount of creature holiness and happiness. We use the term
creature holiness and happiness in opposition to the position of Edwards
that
this holiness and happiness are emanations from God in such a sense
that they
are communicated to the creature from His fulness; so that
in fact
they are
God¡¦s holiness and happiness diffusing themselves among the creatures of His
empire. He holds that communication of holiness and happiness formed a part of
God¡¦s last end
or one of His ultimate ends
in creation. But then
to carry
out his theory
which makes God His own end
he calls this holiness and
happiness an emanation from Deity Himself
like a fountain overflowing its
banks
or sending forth its waters in streams. The idea that creation is an
emanation from God is not strictly true. It is a production of God
and a
production of something out of nothing
not an emanation from Him. We can see
how the benevolence of God could lead Him to purpose from all eternity to
create the universe at a certain time
--in which case
the universe would not
exist until that time arrived. But we cannot see how an original tendency can
exist in God
for something to flow out of Himself
as water streams from a
fountain
unless the flowing out co-exists with the tendency; and if so
then
the universe has co-existed with God
that is
it has existed from eternity.
The phraseology used by Edwards would go to show that the universe is a part of
God; and that the holiness of the creature is simply God¡¦s holiness
communicated to the creature. He says: ¡§The disposition to communicate Himself
or diffuse His own fulness
which we must conceive of as being originally in
God as a perfection of His nature
was what moved Him to create the world.¡¨. .
.¡¨But the diffusive disposition that excited God to give creatures existence
was rather a communicative disposition in general
or a disposition in the
fulness of the divinity to flow out and diffuse itself.¡¨ If these statements
are correct
then the creation must be a part of the fulness of God. If the act
of creating was the flowing out and the diffusion of the Divinity itself
then
the result must have been a part of that divinity; or
in other words
the
universe must be a part of God. Again
in speaking of the knowledge
holiness
and joy of the creature
he says: ¡§These things are but the emanations of God¡¦s
own knowledge
holiness
and joy.¡¨ So that the universe is not only a part of
God
but the very attributes of His intelligent creatures
their perfections
their holiness and happiness
are only communications of the perfections
the
holiness and happiness of God: they are God¡¦s perfections
God¡¦s holiness and
happiness
communicated by Him to the creature. We believe that the universe
instead of being an emanation from Deity
is the work of His hand; instead of
being the overflowing of His fulness
it is a creation of His omnipotence--a
causing something to exist out of nothing; and the holiness and happiness of
creatures
instead of being the holiness and happiness of God communicated to
them
consists in their conformity to the rule of right
and that delight which
inheres in and is consequent upon such conformity. The production of these
or
the securing them to the greatest possible extent
we hold to be God¡¦s last end
in creation. We repeat
then
that the ultimate objective end of God in
creating the universe was
to secure the greatest possible amount of creature
holiness and happiness. Our reasons for this opinion are as follows:
1. As we have seen
God¡¦s ultimate end must be something desirable
in itself
and not desired merely as a means to an end. The holiness of God is
the most excellent thing in the universe; and next to it
is the holiness of
His creatures. God¡¦s end in creation could not have been to promote the former
for it was perfect from eternity. It must
therefore
have been to promote the
latter
which is so excellent in itself
and so much to be prized for its
results
that it is entirely worthy to be the ultimate end of Jehovah. But it
may be asked
May not God¡¦s end in creation have been to display His own
holiness
on account of the delight He takes in having that holiness praised
loved
and adored? No doubt God delights to have the perfections of His
character praised
loved
and adored; but
is this delight selfish
or is it
benevolent? If selfish
then it is sin. If benevolent
then it is a delight in
holiness. God delights to be praised
loved
and adored
because this praise
love
and adoration
form the principal ingredient in holiness; and as it is
the creature who praises
loves
and adores
so that this effect is produced in
the mind and heart of the creature
we call it creature holiness.
2. We argue that creature holiness is the end of God in creation
from the fact that for God to promote His own glory
or to promote such a state
of mind in the creature as will lead the creature to glorify Him
is the same
thing as to promote holiness in the creature. The Scriptures teach that God
does what He does for His own name¡¦s sake
or
which is the same thing
for His
glory¡¦s sake; and we are commanded
¡§whether we eat or drink
or whatever we
do
to do all to the glory of God.¡¨ If
therefore
¡§God¡¦s glory
¡¨ and ¡§God¡¦s
being glorified
¡¨ as they are set forth in the Scriptures
differ from creature
holiness
then His holiness is not the end of God in creation; but if they can
be shown to be the same thing
then is it His last great end in creating the
universe. God¡¦s glory consists either in that which constitutes His intrinsic
glory
or in that in which He delights and glories
as something which He
desires and seeks to accomplish above everything else; or in that state of mind
in others
which leads them to praise and glorify Him. That God¡¦s intrinsic
glory was not
and could not have been His end in creation
is evident from the
fact that it was and is the same from eternity
before creation existed; it has
never been in any sense changed or altered
nor is it possible that such change
should take place: and it is perfectly evident that that which existed before
an event
and is not in the least changed by the event
could not have been the
end or object of that event. Again: If we mean
by God¡¦s glory
that in which
He delights and glories
as something which He desires and seeks to accomplish
above everything else; then
as we contend
this something is holiness: and as
it cannot be His own holiness (for He cannot seek to accomplish what is already
accomplished)
it must be creature holiness. That holiness is what God delights
in above everything else
and desires to promote
is evident from the following
considerations:
1. Those passages which speak of what God does as being done for His
name¡¦s sake
or for His own glory (Isaiah 43:6-7; Isaiah 60:21;2 Samuel 7:23; Psalms 106:8). These texts teach that God
does what He does
to lead His subjects to praise and glorify Him
and to
magnify His great and holy name; in other words
to love Him with all their
soul
mind
and strength: and what is that but creature holiness?
2. Those passages which enjoin it upon the creature to do what he
does to the glory of God (1 Corinthians 6:20; 1 Corinthians 10:31).
3. Those passages which speak of the glory of God as the result of
certain acts of the creature (Philippians 1:11; John 15:8). But how is itthat
¡§being
filled with the fruits of righteousness
¡¨ and ¡§bearing much fruit
¡¨ glorifies
God? It does this in two ways: These fruits are holiness embodied in the life
and they present the transcendent excellence of God¡¦s ultimate end in creation.
They produce their effect upon other minds
and lead them to praise and glorify
God
and thus promote holiness in them. To love and adore God with all the
heart
is to glorify God; and to love and adore God with all the heart
is
holiness in exercise: so that
in this sense
God¡¦s glory and the exercise of
holy affections are the same thing. And to lead others to love and adore God
with all the heart
is to lead them to glorify God; and to lead others to love
and adore God with all the heart
is to lead them to exercise holy affections:
so that to promote the glory of God in others
and to promote holiness in them
is the same thing. The end of God in creation
then
as we think we have shown
is not in Himself
but consists in the promotion of creature holiness
and that
happiness which may appropriately be called the happiness of holiness. (W.
C. Wisner.)
The creative laws and the Scripture revelation
It is proposed to examine the general teaching of the Scriptures
in the light of six laws
according to which
by the common consensus of
competent authorities
the Creator worked in the production of this present
terrestrial order.
1. The first of these laws is the law of progress. It may be taken
as a fact
settled by overwhelming scientific evidence
and no less clearly
affirmed in Genesis
that the world was not created all at once
and that there
was a certain order in which its various parts appeared. It was
without an
exception
an order under a law of progress; first
that which was lower
afterward that which was higher. The illustrations are so familiar that they
scarcely need to be mentioned. Is this law of progress still in force; or is
the progress ended
and is man
as we know him
the last and highest form of
life that earth shall see? The impossibility of further progress cannot
therefore be argued on the ground of inconceivability. It can only be
established if it be proved beyond controversy that the end of creation has
been reached in man. Is there sufficient reason to believe this? Reason itself
teaches that if there be a personal God
the Creator of all
then the
self-manifestation of God must be the highest end of the earthly creation.
When
therefore
the Holy Scripture tells us of the appearance on earth of a
God-man
the perfect ¡§image of the invisible God
¡¨ and of a new order of
manhood begotten by a new birth into union with this second man
and renewed
after the image of the Creator
to be manifested hereafter in a corresponding
embodiment and in a changed environment
through a resurrection from the dead
all this is so far from being contrary to the order established in creation
that it is in full accord therewith
and only furnishes a new illustration of
that law of progress according to which God worked from the beginning.
2. A second law which has been discovered to have been
characteristic of the creative process
is the law of progress by ages. That
this was the law of Divine procedure is clear both from the book of revelation
and of nature. There were periods of creative activity. The work had its
evenings and its mornings
repeatedly recurring. The line of progress was not a
uniform gradient; not an inclined plane
but a stairway
in which the steps
were aeons. In each instance a ¡§new idea in the system of progress¡¨ was
introduced
and that fact constituted
in part at least
the new age. But it
may be further remarked
that each new age was marked
not merely by the
presence
but by the dominance
of a higher type of life than the one
preceding. Now we have seen that
according to Scripture
the law of progress
is still in force; after man as he now is
shall appear manifested in the earth
a humanity of a higher type than the present animal man
namely
the ¡§spiritual
man
¡¨ as Paul calls him. Does the Scripture also recognize this plan of
progress by ages as still the plan of God? The contrast between the present age
and that which is to come
is indeed one of the fundamental things in the
inspired representation of the divinely established order. And we can now see
how
in this mode of representation
the Scriptures speak with scientific
precision
and harmonize completely with the best certified conceptions of
nineteenth century science. Not only
according to their teaching
is there to
be still further progress
progress manifested in the introduction of a new and
higher type of manhood
even that which is ¡§from heaven
¡¨ but the introduction
of that new manhood of the resurrection to dominance in the creation is
uniformly represented as marking the beginning of a new age. And just herein
according to the Scripture
lies the contrast between the age which now is and
that which is to come; that in the age which is now
the dominant type of life
is that of the natural
or ¡§animal
¡¨ man; in that which is to come
the
dominant type of life shall be ¡§spiritual¡¨ or resurrection manhood
manifested
in men described by our Lord as those ¡§who cannot die any more
but are equal
unto the angels.¡¨
3. Another law of the Divine working in the bygone ages of the
earth¡¦s history
we may call the law of anticipative or prophetic forms. This
law has been formulated by Professor Agassiz in the following words
which have
been endorsed by the most recent authorities as correctly representing the
facts: ¡§Earlier organic forms often appear to foreshadow and predict others
that are to succeed them in time
as the winged and marine reptiles of the
Mesozoic age foreshadow the birds and cetaceans (that were to succeed them in
the next age). There were reptiles before the Reptilian age; mammals before the
Mammalian age. These appear now like a prophecy in that earlier time of an
order of things not possible with the earlier combinations then prevailing in
the animal kingdom.¡¨ Such
then
has been the law in all the past ages. Is it
still in force
or is its operation ended? What a momentous question! How full
of both scientific and religious interest! For even on scientific grounds
as
has been shown
we are led to anticipate an age to come which shall be marked
by the dominance of a type of life higher than the present. And
as we have
seen
the suggestion of science is in this case confirmed by Scripture
which
describes the life and characteristics of that ¡§age to come
¡¨ as science could
not. Such descriptions are not very minute
but so far as they go they are very
definite and clear. Perhaps the most full and clear single statement is that found
in the words of Christ to the Sadducees
to whom He spoke of an age to follow
the present
to be inherited by men in resurrection; a type of men who ¡§neither
marry nor are given in marriage. Neither can they die any more: for they are
equal unto the angels; and are sons of God
being sons of the resurrection.¡¨ (Luke 20:35-36). Men incapable of
subjection to death
sons of God
perfectly holy--such is the race which shall
come to headship in creation in the future age. Herein again
then
the record
of Scripture is consistent at once with the system of law as revealed in the
past
and with itself
in that
having predicted an age to come
to be
inherited by the higher order of resurrection manhood
it sets forth also
as
historic fact
the appearance of anticipative forms in the age which now is.
Not to speak of the cases of Enoch and Elijah
we have an Illustrious instance
of a prophetic type in the person of Jesus of Nazareth. In Him was manifested a
type of life transcending beyond measure embodied life as we know it here. It
appeared in One who claimed to be the Son of God
and who manifested powers
in
proof of this claim
such as well befitted it--powers which later
by one of His
disciples
were suggestively called ¡§powers of the age to come
¡¨ and who
finally became the firstborn from the dead
being the firstborn son of the
resurrection.
4. Another law to be observed in the Divine working in the early
history of the earth
is the law of creative interpositions. We must
on
scientific grounds
affirm creative intervention at least in the origination of
matter
and of life
and of free moral agents. The only alternative is absolute
agnosticism on this subject. So much
then
as regards the past. Creative
interposition appears as included in the system of law. How is it as regards
the future? Are we now done with these manifestations of creative power
or
shall they
according to the Scripture
be witnessed again in the future? For
we are taught
as we have seen
that the present age
marked by the presence
and dominance of the animal man
shall end; and that another age shall then
follow
marked by the introduction of a new physical order
¡§a new heavens and
a new earth
¡¨--an order of things to be inherited by an order of men called by
our Lord ¡§children of God and sons of the resurrection
¡¨ sexless
sinless
and
incapable of dying. Has the man of the present age power to raise himself into
this exalted order of life? No one will pretend this. In particular
the
natural
or psychical
animal man of the present age cannot by any
self-development or self-culture raise himself into the order of the spiritual
manhood of the coming age. For regeneration and for resurrection alike he is powerless.
Hence Holy Scripture tells us with utmost plainness that what has been in time
past
is now and shall be again. It tells us that even in this present age the
creative power of God is secretly working
in the ¡§new birth¡¨ of those who are
chosen to become the sons of God and heirs of the age to come
and therefore
styles the regenerated man ¡§a new creature.¡¨ As yet
however
it is but the
faint dawn of the creative morning. When the day breaks
the same Scriptures
teach us
shall be seen a new and magnificent display of the creative might of
God
introducing ¡§a new heavens and a new earth
¡¨ and bringing in also the sons
of the resurrection with their spiritual bodies to inherit the glory. For as
the new order of the new age shall itself be introduced by creative power
so
shall the new manhood which is destined to inherit that order. For resurrection
is by no possibility the outcome of a natural process; it will be the direct
result of an act of the almighty power of God.
5. Reference may be made to another law of the Divine administration
in the earlier terrestrial history. It may be called the law of exterminations.
The rocks bear testimony to the fact that from time to time during the long
creative ages
at the close of one great period after another
there occurred
exterminations
more or less extensive
of various orders of life. Professor
Dana
for instance
tells us
¡§At the close of each period of the Palaeozoic
ages
there was an extermination of a large number of living species; and
as
each epoch terminated . . . one
in most cases
less general.¡¨ In particular
he says
again
that at the close of the Cretaceous age there was an
extermination ¡§remarkable for its universality and thoroughness¡¨; ¡§the vast
majority of the species
and nearly all the characteristic genera disappeared.¡¨
The same thing occurred again at the close of the Tertiary
and again in the
Quaternary. The causes of these various exterminations were different in
different instances. Often they were due to the elevation or submergence of
extensive areas of the earth¡¦s surface; sometimes to the more sudden and rapid
action of earthquakes; sometimes
within narrow limits
they were caused by
fiery eruptions from the interior of the earth. Sometimes
again
they were due
to changes of climate more or less extensive
through the operation of causes
which need not be here detailed. As a matter of fact
it appears that the
inbringing of a higher order of life and organization commonly involved the
extermination of various genera and species unsuited to the new environment.
This was demonstrably a part of the plan of God in the development of His
creative thoughts. Even lesser divisions of the great creative aeons were
sometimes marked in like manner. Up to the present human period
therefore
there has been in force a law of exterminations
operating under the conditions
specified. But yet another age
according to Scripture
is to succeed the
present. Is there reason to anticipate that when the point shall be reached of
transition from the present to the coming age
the law of exterminations will
again take effect? Does Scripture give any hint in answer to this question
and
is it here again in harmony with scientific discovery as regards the laws of
the past? The reader will have anticipated the answer which must be given. For
it is the repeated declaration of the New Testament Scriptures that the present
age shall end
as earlier ages have sometimes ended
with catastrophic changes;
this next time
with a catastrophe
not of water
but of fire
giving a new and
very terrible application of the ancient law of exterminations. For we are told
that a day is coming when ¡§the elements shall melt with fervent heat
the earth
also and the works that are therein shall be burned up.¡¨ The day for which the
present heavens and earth are ¡§reserved into fire
¡¨ shall also be a ¡§day of the
perdition of ungodly men.¡¨ 2 Peter 3:7).
6. Yet one other law of the creative working may be discerned as we
study the record of the rocks. We may well call it the law of preparation. It
were thinkable
since God is almighty
that each age should have been
introduced as something absolutely new
having no connection with the ages that
had preceded it; that He should have prepared the earth for the new orders of
life which were to inhabit it
by a direct act of creative power. But
as a
matter of fact
God did not do in this way. On the contrary
He so constituted
the successive ages in the earth¡¦s history that each was a preparation for that
which was to come afterward. Illustrations are as numerous as the ages and
periods of geologic time. Each age had its roots
so to speak
in the age or
ages that had preceded it. Indeed
the whole Scripture history is a series of
illustrations of this law. Just as in the geologic ages
here were subordinate
periods
less sharply distinct indeed
into which the greater ages were
subdivided
so the Scriptures divide the whole present age of the natural man
into what
in theological and biblical language
we call successive
¡§dispensations.¡¨ In the case of each of these we may see this law of
preparation exemplified. Each dispensation was in order to another which was to
follow. The Adamic age prepared for the Noachian; the Noachian
for the Mosaic;
the Mosaic--and indeed all of these again--for the Christian. So also
according to the same revelation
shall it prove to be as regards the whole
great age of the natural man. In a manner still more momentous and comprehensive
this age is set forth as a preparation for the age which is to come
the
resurrection age. This may be true even in a physical sense. For in the new
age
according to Isaiah
Peter
and John
there is to be a new earth
which
shall appear out of the fires which shall yet consume the present world; and
for this and the physical changes which shall thus be brought about
we know
not what forces may not even now silently be working beneath our very feet.
They teach this as regards regeneration and sanctification. These are
preparatory in their nature. It is thus that the new man is ¡§made in secret
and curiously wrought in the lowest parts of the earth.¡¨ Even death
whether it
be of the saint or of the sinner
has its part in the preparatory plan. The application
of this is evident. Whence such a harmony in the one case
and in such
unexpected directions
for which we search in the authoritative books of other
religions in vain? Whence had these men who wrote the Scriptures this their
wisdom? Assume what they claim for themselves
a special inspiration from the
Former of the universe Himself
and then the harmony with the original system
of natural law which pervades the representations of the past
present
and
future
is what we should expect. Deny this
and how shall the fact be
explained? Further
it is evident that the facts to which our attention has
been directed
reverse the argument which one often hears from unbelievers
against the probability of the truth of Scripture history and prophecy
derived
from the observed uniformity of the system of natural law. Instead of saying
that the observed invariability of the system of natural law makes the
Scripture teachings with regard to the incarnation
the resurrection
the new
heavens and the new earth
and the judgment by which they shall be introduced
to be intrinsically improbable
we must say the opposite! These thoughts also
have a bearing on the theodicy. Much in the present age is dark with painful
mystery. If there be a God infinite in holiness
goodness
and power
then
it
has been asked in all ages
Why such a miserable
imperfect world? Why the
earthquake
the pestilence
and the famine
with the destruction and agony they
bring? Why sorrow
and sin
and death? Why the disappointed hopes
the darkened
homes
empires wrecked
races degenerating
and disappearing from sight at last
in a morass of moral corruptions? These questions burden the holy
while the
scoffer answers in his desperation
¡§There is no God such as you dream!¡¨ If
this were the last age of earth
it is hard to see how such questions could be
answered. But if we recall to mind the ancient law of progress
and progress by
ages
and that other law of preparation
we may be able to see--not indeed the
answer to our questionings
but so much as shall enable us to hold fast
without wavering
our faith in the God of nature
of history
and of
revelation. (S. Kellogg
D. D.)
Creation
I. DEFINITION OF
CREATION. By creation we mean that free act of the triune God by which in the
beginning for His own glory He made
without the use of pre-existing materials
the whole visible and invisible universe. In explanation we notice--
1. Creation is not ¡§production out of nothing
¡¨ as if ¡§nothing¡¨ were
a substance out of which ¡§something¡¨ could be formed.
2. Creation is not a fashioning of preexisting materials
nor an
emanation from the substance of Deity
but is a making of that to exist which
once did not exist
either in form or substance.
3. Creation is not an instinctive or necessary process of the Divine
nature
but is the free act of a rational will
put forth for a definite and
sufficient end. Creation is different in kind from that eternal process of the
Divine nature in virtue of which we speak of generation and procession.
Begetting is eternal
out of time; creation is in time
or with time.
4. Creation is the act of the triune God
in the sense that all the
persons of the Trinity
themselves uncreated
have a part in it--the Father as
the originating
the Son as the mediating
the Spirit as the realizing cause.
II. PROOF OF THE
DOCTRINE OF CREATION. Creation is a truth of which mere science or reason
cannot fully assure us. Physical science can observe and record changes
but it
knows nothing of origins. Reason cannot absolutely disprove the eternity of
matter. For proof of the doctrine of Creation
therefore
we rely wholly upon
Scripture. Scripture supplements science
and renders its explanation of the
universe complete
III. THEORIES WHICH
OPPOSE CREATION.
1. Dualism. Of dualism there are two forms.
(a) The maxim ex nihilo nihil fit
upon which it rests
is
true only in so far as it asserts that no event takes place without a cause. It
is false
if it mean that nothing can ever be made except out of material
previously existing. The maxim is therefore applicable only to the realm of
second causes
and does not bar the creative power of the great first Cause.
The doctrine of creation does not dispense with a cause; on the other hand
it
assigns to the universe a sufficient cause in God. Martensen
¡§Dogmatics
¡¨
116--¡§The nothing out of which God creates the world
is the eternal
possibilities of His will
which are the sources of all the actualities of the
world.¡¨
(b) Although creation without the use of pre-existing material is
inconceivable
in the sense of being unpicturable to the imagination
yet the
eternity of matter is equally inconceivable. For creation without pre-existing
material
moreover
we find remote analogies in our own creation of ideas and
volitions
a fact as inexplicable as God¡¦s bringing of new substances into
being. Mivart
¡§Lessons from Nature
¡¨ 371
372--¡§We have to a certain extent an
aid to the thought of absolute creation in our own free volition
which
as
absolutely originating and determining
may be taken as the type to us of the
creative act.¡¨ We speak of ¡§the creative faculty¡¨ of the artist or poet. We
cannot give reality to the products of our imaginations
as God can to his. But
if thought were only substance
the analogy would be complete. Shedd
¡§Dogm. Theol.
¡¨
1.467--¡§Our thoughts and volitions are created ex nihilo
in the sense
that one thought is not made out of another thought
nor one volition out of
another volition.¡¨
(c) It is unphilosophical to postulate two eternal substances
when
one self-existent Cause of all things will account for the facts.
(d) It contradicts our fundamental notion of God as absolute
sovereign to suppose the existence of any other substance to be independent of
His will.
(e) This second substance with which God must of necessity work
since it is
according to the theory
inherently evil and the source of evil
not only limits God¡¦s power
but destroys His blessedness.
(f) This theory does not answer its purpose of accounting for moral
evil
unless it be also assumed that spirit is material--in which case dualism
gives place to materialism. The other form of dualism is:
(a) by all the arguments for the unity
omnipotence
sovereignty
and
blessedness of God;
(b) by the Scripture representations of the prince of evil as the
creature of God and as subject to God¡¦s control.
2. Emanation. This theory holds that the universe is of the same
substance with God
and is the product of successive evolutions from His being.
This was the view of the Syrian Gnostics. Their system was an attempt to
interpret Christianity in the forms of Oriental theosophy. A similar doctrine
was taught
in the last century
by Swedenborg. We object to it upon the
following grounds:
3. Creation from eternity. This theory regards creation as an act of
God in eternity past. It was propounded by Origen
and has been held in recent
times by Martensen. The necessity of supposing such creation from eternity has
been argued upon the grounds--
4. Spontaneous generation. This theory holds that creation is but the
name for a natural process still going on--matter itself having in it the
power
under proper conditions
of taking on new functions
and of developing
into organic forms. This view is held by Owen and Bastian. We object that
IV. GOD¡¦S END IN
CREATION. In determining this end
we turn first to--
1. The testimony of Scripture. This may be summed up in four
statements. God finds His end
All these statements may be combined in the following
namely
that God¡¦s supreme end in creation is nothing outside of Himself
but is His
own glory--in the revelation
in and through creatures
of the infinite
perfection ofHis own being. Since holiness is the fundamental attribute in God
to make Himself
His own pleasure
His own glory
His own manifestation
to be
His end in creation
is to find His chief end in His own holiness
its
maintenance
expression
and communication. To make this His chief end
however
is not to exclude certain subordinate ends
such as the revelation of
His wisdom
power
and love
and the consequent happiness of innumerable
creatures to whom this revelation is made.
2. The testimony of reason. That His own glory
in the sense just
mentioned
is God¡¦s supreme end in creation
is evident from the following
considerations:
V. RELATION OF
THE DOCTRINE OF CREATION TO OTHER DOCTRINES.
1. To the holiness and benevolence of God. This is not a perfect
world. It was not perfect even when originally constituted. Its imperfection is
due to sin. God made it with reference to the Fall--the stage was arranged for
the great drama of sin and redemption which was to be enacted thereon. We
accept Bushnell¡¦s idea of ¡§anticipative consequences
¡¨ and would illustrate it
by the building of a hospital room while yet no member of the family is sick
and by the salvation of the patriarchs through a Christ yet to come. If the
earliest vertebrates of geological history were types of man and preparations
for his coming
then pain and death among those same vertebrates may equally
have been a type of man¡¦s sin and its results of misery. If sin bad not been an
incident
foreseen and provided for
the world might have been a Paradise. As a
matter of fact
it will become a paradise only at the completion of the
redemptive work of Christ.
2. To the wisdom and free-will of God.
3. To providence and redemption. (A. H. Strong
D. D.)
The creation as a revelation of God
1. His omnipotence.
2. His wisdom.
3. His goodness.
4. His love. (J. P. Lange
D. D.)
The world according to its various forms
1. As creation.
2. As nature.
3. As cosmos.
4. As aeon. (J. P. Lange
D. D.)
The work of God and the work of man
What is different
and what is common to both.
1. The order.
2. The constancy.
3. The gradual progression.
4. The aim. (J. P. Lange
D. D.)
The creation and revelation of life from God
1. The foundations of life in
the elementary world.
2. The symbolical phenomena of life in the animal world.
3. The reality and truth of life in the human world. (J. P.Lange
D. D.)
The birth of the world also the birth of time
1. The fact that the world
and time are inseparable.
2. The application.
The outline of creation
heaven and earth:--
1. Heaven and earth in union.
2. Earth for heaven.
3. Heaven for earth. (J. P. Lange
D. D.)
Creation
How to begin to write the Bible must have been a question of great
difficulty. The beginning which is given here commends itself as peculiarly
sublime. Regard it as you please
as literal
historical
prabolical
it is
unquestionably marked by adequate energy and magnificence of style. He finds that
he must say something about the house before he says anything about the tenant
but he feels that that something must be the least possible.
I. THIS ACCOUNT
OF CREATION IS DEEPLY RELIGIOUS
and from this fact I infer that the whole book
of which it is the opening chapter is intended to be a religious and not a
scientific revelation.
II. THIS ACCOUNT
OF CREATION EVIDENTLY ADMITS OF MUCH ELUCIDATION AND EXPANSION. Moses does not
say
¡§I have told you everything
and if any man shall ever arise to make a
note or comment upon my words
he is to be regarded as a liar and a thief.¡¨ He
gives rather a rough outline which is to be filled up as life advances. He says
in effect ¡§This is the text
now let the commentators come with their notes.¡¨
This first chapter of Genesis is like an acorn
for out of it have come great
forests of literature; it must have some pith in it
and sap
and force
for
verily its fertility is nothing less than a miracle.
III. This account
of creation
though leaving so much to be elucidated
is in harmony with fact
in a sufficient degree to GIVE US CONFIDENCE IN THE THINGS WHICH REMAIN TO BE
ILLUSTRATED.
IV. THERE IS A
SPECIAL GRANDEUR IN THE ACCOUNT WHICH IS HERE GIVEN OF THE ORIGIN OF MAN. ¡§Let
Us make man¡¨--¡§make
¡¨ as if little by little
a long process
in the course of
which man becomes a party to his own malting! Nor is this suggestion so wide of
the mark as might at first appear. Is man not even now in process of being
¡§made¡¨? Must not all the members of the ¡§Us¡¨ work upon him in order to complete
him and give him the last touch of imperishable beauty? The Father has shaped
him
the Son has redeemed him
the Spirit is now regenerating and sanctifying
him
manifold ministries are now working upon him
to the end that he may ¡§come
to a perfect man
unto the measure of the stature of the fulness of Christ.¡¨ (J.
Parker
D. D.)
God the Maker of heaven and earth
I. As regards the
time of creation we are told nothing. There is no note of date or time until
after the creation of Adam. Six successive periods of creation are spoken of
with no indication as to the length of each.
II. There is no
contradiction
I think
between any result as to the world¡¦s age at which
science may arrive
and the record with which the Book of Genesis opens. Are
there not clear indications that the creation of the world was not the result
of the omnipotent act of a moment
but of the Divine creative energy working
(as we ever still see it working) through gradual processes
through successive
gradations?
III. As long as
science keeps to her own great sphere of discovering and codifying facts
we
have only to thank her for her labours. I need scarcely say
however
that a
certain school of scientific men are not content with this. They leave the
boundaries of science
and enter the domain of theology. They say
because we
find these successive stages of progress in creation--this development of one
period from another--we will regard matter as having in itself all power and
potency of life. They will not mention God at all
or if they do it is merely
as another name for law. In the law which they discover from its operations--in
the potency which they find in matter itself
they see sufficient to account
for all creation; and we can dispense with that myth which we call ¡§God the
Father Almighty
Maker of heaven and earth.¡¨ It is here they impugn Genesis. It
was not ¡§God¡¨ who created these things; they were evolved from eternal matter
in accordance with irresistible law. The Bible is primarily a religious book. This
chapter is not meant to tell us all the varied processes through which God
carried on His great creative work. The lesson Moses had to tell the people he
ruled when he brought them out of a land where material force was everything;
where men worshipped the physical universe--the fruits of the field
and the
moon and stars of heaven--was
that there was a God beyond all these; that
these were only the works of His creative power. Without Him they could not be.
It was not a scientific view of the material universe
but a religious view
that Moses wished to give these people. He sought to impress on them that
though these things passed through various add successive stages
God was
there. God did it. (T. T. Shore
M. A.)
The creation
We must judge the book by the times.
I. The first
principle to be inferred is that of THE UNITY OF GOD. One Divine Being is
represented as the sole Cause of the universe. Now this is the only foundation
of a true religion for humanity.
II. The next
principle in this chapter is that ALL NOBLE WORK IS GRADUAL. God spent six days
at His work
and then said it was very good. In proportion to the nobility of
anything
is it long in reaching its perfection. The greatest ancient nation
took the longest time to develope its iron power; the securest political
freedom in a nation did not advance by bounds
or by violent revolutions
but
in England ¡§broadened slowly down from precedent to precedent.¡¨ The greatest
modern society--the Church of Christ--grew as Christ prophesied
from a beginning
as small as a grain of mustard seed into a noble tree
and grows now more
slowly than other society has ever grown--so slowly
that persons who are not
far-seeing say that it has failed. The same law is true of every individual
Christian life. Faith
to be strong
must be of gradual growth. Love
to be
unconquerable
must be the produce not of quick-leaping excitement
but of
patience having her perfect work. Spiritual character must be moulded into the
likeness of Christ by long years of battle and of trial
and we are assured
that eternity is not too long to perfect it.
III. Connected with
this universal principle is another--that THIS GRADUAL GROWTH OF NOBLE THINGS
CONSIDERED IN ITS GENERAL APPLICATION TO THE UNIVERSE
IS FROM THE LOWER TO THE
HIGHER--is
in fact
a progress
not a retrogression. We are told in this
chapter that first arose the inorganic elements
and then life--first the life
of the plant
then of the animal
and then of man
¡§the top and crown of
things.¡¨ It is so also in national life--first family life
then pastoral
then
agricultural
then the ordered life of a polity
the highest. It is the same
with religion. First
natural religion
then the dispensation of the law
then
the more spiritual dispensation of the prophets
then the culmination of the
external revelation through man in Christ
afterwards the higher inward
dispensation of the universal Spirit
to be succeeded by a higher still--the
immediate presence of God in all. So also with our own spiritual life. First
conviction of need
then the rapture of felt forgiveness
then God¡¦s testing of
the soul
through which moral strength and faith grow firm; and as these grow
deeper
love
the higher grace
increasing; and as love increases
noble work
and nobler patience making life great and pure
till holiness emerges
and we
are at one with God; and then
finally
the Christian calm--serene old age
with its clear heaven and sunset light
to prophesy a new and swift approaching
dawn for the emancipated spirit.
IV. The next truth
to be inferred from this chapter is that THE UNIVERSE WAS PREPARED FOR THE GOOD
AND ENJOYMENT OF MAN. I cannot say that this is universal
for the stars exist
for themselves
and the sun for other planets than ours; and it is a poor thing
to say that the life of animals and plants is not for their own enjoyment as
well as ours! but so far as they regard us
it is an universal truth
and the
Bible was written for our learning. Therefore
in this chapter
the sun and
stars are spoken of only in their relation to us
and man is set as master over
all creation. It is on the basis of this truth that man has always
unconsciously acted
and made progress in civilization.
V. The next
principle is THE INTERDEPENDENCE OF REST AND WORK. The Sabbath is the outward
expression of God¡¦s recognition of this as a truth for man. It was commanded
because it was necessary. ¡§The Sabbath was made for man
¡¨ said Christ. And the
same principle ought to be extended over our whole existence.
VI. Lastly
there
is one specially spiritual principle which glorifies this chapter
and the
import of which is universal
¡§GOD MADE MAN IN HIS OWN IMAGE.¡¨ It is the
divinest revelation in the Old Testament. In it is contained the reason of all
that has ever been great in human nature or in human history. In it are
contained all the sorrows of the race as it looks back to its innocence
and
all the hope of the race as it aspires from the depths of its fall to the
height of the imperial palace whence it came. In it is contained all the joy of
the race as it sees in Christ this great first principle revealed again. In it
are contained all the history of the human heart
all the history of the human
mind
all the history of the human conscience
all the history of the human
spirit. It is the foundation stone of all written and unwritten poetry
of all
metaphysics
of all ethics
of all religion. (Stopford A. Brooke
M. A.)
Creation¡¦s birth
1. What a strange opening to
a book! Without observation
parade
flourish.
2. Strange that there is no argument on the being of God. The
Architect is simply named in the description of the building. A portrait in oil
suggests a painter.
3. There is a gradual unveiling of God as you proceed with the book.
God reveals Himself to us by slow processes.
I. What was
BEFORE the beginning?
1. God in underived and perfect existence.
2. God dwelling in the silence and grandeur of His own eternity.
II. What was IN
the beginning?
1. When was the beginning? Date not fixed here. We only know the
fact
that there was a beginning.
2. What occurred in the beginning? The material universe began to
be.
III. What FOLLOWED
the beginning?
1. Law.
2. Life.
3. History.
4. Redemption.
Remarks:
1. From a beginning we know not what may come.
2. The beginning contains what follows. (J. S. Withington.)
God first
I. THE DEVOUT
RECOGNITION OF GOD SHOULD PRECEDE ALL PHILOSOPHY. The God whom we worship is
not a metaphysical idea; a form of thought; a philosophical abstraction; but a
living
personal
eternal Being
apart from and prior to all human thought. He
is not a creation of the intellect
but the intellect¡¦s Creator. We must begin
with Him. Is not this one of the child¡¦s first thoughts
and one which life¡¦s
long experience but deepens and confirms--that it was God who created all
things? Does not the bare statement carry with it its own conviction? What need
is there of proof? Who argues that there is a solid earth on which he stands; a
sun shining in midday sky? Who constructs arguments to prove his own existence?
And does not God stand at the beginning of all thought and all argument? And is
not the denial of Him a sheer and wilful absurdity which no attempt at proof
can make even plausible?
II. THE DEVOUT
RECOGNITION OF GOD SHOULD PRECEDE ALL SCIENCE. The fact of His existence lies
at the foundation of all physical science
and must be admitted as its first
and most essential fact. For what is science in general
or a science in
particular
but the knowledge of facts--their qualities
relations
and
causes--arranged and classified? But if science begins by refusing to admit
or
by failing to perceive
the First Fact
and the Great Cause of all things? Does
nothing exist but what the knife of the anatomist
or the tests of the chemist
can detect? Matter and force do exist
or matter under some plastic power
passing through innumerable changes. But what is it? And is this all? Are there
no marks of intelligence?--purpose?--will? Is there no distinction of
beauty?--of right and wrong? And what are these but marks of the ever-present
God? Atheism explains nothing
and Pantheism nothing. No! Science cannot
discover God. It is in the light of God¡¦s presence that science is best
revealed. Science and philosophy alike presuppose HIM.
III. THE DEVOUT
RECOGNITION OF GOD PRECEDES ALL MORALITY AND RELIGION. It lies at the basis of
any sound ethical theory
and any true religious system of doctrine and
practice. Religion
whether natural or revealed
is based on this fact. It is
no more the part of religion than it is of philosophy and science to discover
or to demonstrate the existence of God
but to worship Him. (F. J. Falding
D. D.)
The creation
I. THERE WAS A
BEGINNING
AND THIS WAS THE ACT OF GOD.
II. THE DISORDER
OF PRIMAL CREATION IS REDUCED TO ORDER BY THE POWER AND INTELLIGENCE OF THE
DIVINE WILL. The life of God is imparted to the chaotic world.
III. THIS PROGRESS
OF CREATION PASSES FROM ORDER
THROUGH ORGANIZATION
INTO LIFE
UNTIL IT
CULMINATES IN MAN. Plants and animals are ¡§after their kind.¡¨ Not so with man.
He is ¡§after the likeness¡¨ of God. Lessons:
1. The adaptation of this world to be man¡¦s place of abode while God
tries him by the duty He has placed upon him to perform.
2. All things are subject to man¡¦s use and government.
3. The human race is of one blood
derived from one pair.
4. God loves order. (L. D. Bevan
LL. B.)
Creation
This simple sentence--
I. DENIES
ATHEISM. It assumes the being of God.
II. DENIES
POLYTHEISM. Confesses the one eternal Creator.
III. DENIES
MATERIALISM. Asserts the creation of matter.
IV. DENIES
PANTHEISM. Assumes the existence of God before all things
and apart from them.
V. DENIES
FATALISM. Involves the freedom of the Eternal Being. (James G. Murphy
LL.
D.)
Moses and Darwin
Though the Hebrew prophet was not a teacher of science
he has in
this chapter given us the alphabet of religious science. The great principles
of things were disclosed to him
and in these verses he has given us a rapid
and suggestive sketch of the great outlines of God¡¦s creative work. His
instructions were not incorrect
but incomplete
in order to meet the pupil¡¦s
capacity.
I. LOOK AT THE
HARMONY BETWEEN MOSES AND DARWIN.
1. According to Moses
creation has its origin in God. Darwin has
gone down into the bowels of the earth
he has traced this globe to a nebulous
light
and pursued the molecules to their furthest point. But he has confessed
that beyond there is a mystery which baffles all skill
and this mystery he
calls God. According to him the material universe has a spiritual origin
and
before and after each creation he would write the word ¡§God.¡¨
2. According to Moses
God¡¦s method of creation was by slow
development. Evolution is the great faith of the scientific world today. It
directs us to trace everywhere the processes of unfolding growth. And according
to Darwin these processes are the methods of creative wisdom.
II. THE
GROUNDLESSNESS OF ALL FEARS FROM THE TEACHING OF TRUE SCIENCE.
1. No honest criticism can destroy God¡¦s truth.
2. Evolution does not banish God or design from nature.
III. LESSONS FROM
THE LIFE OF DARWIN.
1. Patience and perseverance in study. He accumulated facts
but he
took time to reflect upon them before he formed them into systems. All great
work is slow work.
2. Darwin loved nature
and therefore could interpret her.
3. Darwin lived a simple
true
and loving life. (D. B. James.)
The creation
I. THE ORIGIN OF
THE UNIVERSE.
1. The universe not self-existent
self-evolved
or eternal
but
¡§created.¡¨
2. Brought into existence by the exercise of Divine power. ¡§God
created.¡¨
3. Stages in process of formation implied.
II. THE ORIGIN OF
THE PRESENT ORDER OF OUR PLANET.
1. The chaotic condition of the planet described.
2. The Divine Author of the present order.
3. The first recorded fiat.
III. THE SUMMARY OF
THE CREATIVE WEEK (Genesis 2:4-8). Lessons:
1. Learn the comprehensiveness of the opening sentence of the
Bible.
2. Learn to appreciate this clear
refreshing
and authoritative
declaration that the origin of the universe and of man is a personal
all-wise
almighty
and loving God.
3. Learn the lofty dignity of our primal spiritual nature in its
identification with the ineffable nature of God.
4. Learn that to worship
love
and obey God
is our reasonable
service. (D. C. Hughes
M. A.)
Genesis of the universe
I. A FUNDAMENTAL
QUESTION. What is the origin of things? Perhaps the sublimest question mortal
man can ask. A profoundly religious question
going down to the very roots of
Truth
and Science
and Theology
and Character
and Worship.
II. THE PRECISE
PROBLEM. It is not touching the shaping of matter already existing; it is
touching the origin of matter itself.
III. IMMENSITY OF
THE PROBLEM. The universe
practically speaking
is infinite.
IV. THE PROBLEM
ITSELF. Here are sixty or seventy elements which
so far as we know at present
make up the existing universe. And the point to be exactly observed is this:
not one solitary atom of these elements which make up the universe can man
make. All that man can do is to operate on these elements
compounding them in
various proportions
using the compounds in various ways
shaping them
building with them
and so on. In short
man must have something on which
as
well as with which
to operate. Here
then
is the mighty question: ¡§How
account for this tremendous fact? Whence came this inconceivable amount of
material?¡¨
1. The question is legitimate. We cannot help asking it. Every
effect must have a cause. Here is a stupendously measureless effect: what
caused it? Not one man
not all mankind together
with the most perfect
machinery conceivable
can make one solitary atom of matter. Where
then
did
all this measureless
unutterable
inconceivable quantity of matter composing
this material universe come from? Suppose you say it came from a few cells or
germs
or perhaps one. That does not answer the question. The axiom
¡§Every
effect must have a cause
¡¨ implies another axiom: ¡§Effects are proportional to
their causes¡¨--that is to say
causes are measured by their effects. If the
whole material universe came from a few germs and from nothing else
then the
weight of these germs must be equal to the weight of the universe. You cannot
get out of a thing more than is in it.
2. Only two answers are possible.
3. Grandeur of the answer. Thus this word ¡§create¡¨ is the divinest
word in language
human or angelic. It is the august separatrix between the
creature and the Creator
between the finite and the Infinite. Well
then
may
our text stand forth as the opening sentence of God¡¦s communication to man. For
all theology is wrapped up in this one simple
majestic word--Created. It gives
us an unbeginning
almighty
personal
self-conscious
voluntary God.
4. Final cause of creation. Why did God create the material
universe? Let us not be wise above what is written. And yet I cannot help
thinking that there is a reason for the creation in the very constitution of
our spiritual nature. We need the excitation of sensible objects. We need a
material arena for self-discipline. As a matter of fact
we receive our moral
training for eternity in the school of matter. It is the material world around
us
coming into contact with our moral personalities through the senses of
touching and seeing
and hearing and tasting
which tests our moral character.
And so it comes to pass that the way in which we are impressed by every object
we consciously see or touch probes us
and will testify for us or against us on
the great day. But while this is one of the proximate causes of the creation
the final cause is the glory of God. It is the majestic mirror from which we
see His invisible things
even His eternal power and Godhead (Romans 1:20). (G. D. Boardman.)
Creation
I. THE MAKER OF
THE WORLD
God. The great I AM. The First Cause.
II. THE MAKING OF
THE WORLD.
1. By God¡¦s Word.
2. By God¡¦s Spirit.
III. THE MEANING OF
THE WORLD. God created the world--
1. For His own pleasure and glory (Revelation 4:11).
2. For the happiness of all His creatures (Psalms 104:1-35).
LESSONS:
1. Faith in God
as the Almighty
the All-wise Creator.
2. Reverence for God
as wonderful in all His doings.
3. Gratitude to God
as providing for the wants of His creatures. (W.
S. Smith
B. D.)
The word ¡§earth¡¨ as used in Scripture
In Scripture
as well as in ordinary language
the word ¡§earth¡¨ is
used in two different meanings: sometimes it means the whole globe on which we
live; and sometimes only the solid dust with which the globe is covered
which
is supposed not to be much more than from nine to twelve miles in thickness.
1. The word ¡§earth¡¨ is used to express the whole globe in the 1st
verse of Genesis--¡§In the beginning God created the heaven and the earth¡¨; and
it is so used also in the 40th chapter of Isaiah
verse 22; and again in the
26th chapter of Job
verse 7
where we are told that the Lord ¡§hangeth the
earth upon nothing.¡¨
2. The word ¡§earth¡¨ is also used to express the solid and rocky
crust with which our globe is everywhere covered
and on which rest the vast
waters of the ocean. It is used in this sense in the 10th verse of the 1st
chapter of Genesis: ¡§God called the dry land earth.¡¨ Earth is the dry land as
distinguished from the sea; it means the continents and islands which appear
above the waters.
Design
Creation is not caprice or chance. It is design. The footprints on
the sands of time speak of design
for geology admits that her discoveries all
are based upon design. And this verse
as the whole creation narrative
confirms the admission of science as to design. Therefore
both the Revelation
of God and the Revelation of Nature go hand in hand. Which
then
is the
higher? Surely
Revelation. And why?
1. Because Revelation alone can tell the design. Nature is a riddle
without revelation. I may admire the intricate mechanism of machinery
or even
part of the design hanging from the loom; but all is apparent confusion until
the master takes me to the office
places plans before me
and so discloses the
design. Revelation is that plan--that key by which man is able to unlock the
arcana of nature¡¦s loom.
2. Because that design is the law of Christ. All are parts of one
mighty creation
of which Christ is the centre. (Wm. Adamson.)
On beginnings
I. VARIOUS KINDS
OF BEGINNINGS.
1. Some beginnings are thoroughly evil
and their evil nature is
beyond dispute. To begin to steal
however small the theft; to begin to lie
however trifling the falsehood; to begin selling things for what they are not
and by false weight and measure
however the deception may escape discovery; to
begin to swear
however silent the oath may be kept; to begin dissolute
practices
however trimly they may be dressed up.
2. Other beginnings are innocent
but such as are easily turned into
an evil course. One begins to take proper recreation
and ends in a pleasure
seeking
self-indulgent
idle
undutiful habit.
3. Other beginnings are a mixture of good and evil. It is
undoubtedly well that a drunkard should become a total abstainer; but it is not
an unmixed good when with his abstention he mingles self-righteous pride and
unjust reflections on others.
4. Moreover
there are good beginnings whose good character is
complete and unquestionable. It is always good to set ourselves
for Christ¡¦s
sake
to do honestly
to work diligently
to show mercy
to pray believingly
to help and succour
and sympathize with one another. Every really Christian
beginning is an entire good.
II. HOW BEGINNINGS
ARE MADE.
1. Bad beginnings are made without forethought and resolve
without
definite intention
choice
and premeditation; in a word
heedlessly.
2. Good beginnings are made with forethought
and election
and
predetermination. ¡§What shall I do with my life?¡¨ is a question for every man
who would be right minded.
God the Author of all things.
¡§In the corner of a little garden
¡¨ said the late Dr. Beattie
of
Aberdeen
¡§without informing any one of the circumstance
I wrote in the mould
with my finger the initial letters of my son¡¦s name
and sowed garden cress in
the furrows
covered up the seed
and smoothed the ground. Ten days after this
he came running up to me
and with astonishment in his countenance told me his
name was growing in the garden. I laughed at the report
and seemed to
disregard it
but he insisted on my going to see what had happened. ¡§Yes
¡¨ said
I carelessly
¡§I see it is so
but what is there in this worth notice? Is it
not mere chance?¡¨ ¡§It cannot be so
¡¨ he said
¡§somebody must have contrived
matters so as to produce it.¡¨ ¡§Look at yourself
¡¨ I replied
¡§and consider your
hands and fingers
your legs and feet; came you hither by chance?¡¨ ¡§No
¡¨ he
answered
¡§something must have made me.¡¨ ¡§And who is that something?¡¨ I asked.
He said
¡§I don¡¦t know.¡¨ I therefore told him the name of that Great Being who
made him and all the world. This lesson affected him greatly
and he never
forgot it or the circumstances that introduced it.¡¨
Seeking the true God
Twenty years ago
when Christian missions scarcely existed in
Japan
a young Japanese of good family met with a book on geography in the
Chinese language
which had been compiled by an American missionary in China.
It began with these words: ¡§In the beginning God created the heaven and the
earth.¡¨ What could this mean? Who was that God? Certainly He was not known in
Japan; perhaps He might live in America
whence the author of the book came.
The young man determined to go to America and seek for God. He left Japan
secretly
at the peril of his life; for the old law was then still in force
under which death was the penalty incurred by any Japanese who quitted his
country. He made his way to China
and thence to the United States. There
after some perplexing experiences
he did find the God he had been seeking
and
with his whole heart embraced the faith of Christ. That young man
Joseph
Nisima
is now Principal of a Native Christian College at Kioto
the ancient
sacred capital of Japan. (E. Stock.)
A question for atheists
Napoleon the First
with all his disdain for men
bowed to one
power that he was pleased to regard as greater than himself. In the heart of an
atheistic age he replied to the smattering theorists of his day
¡§Your
arguments gentlemen
are very fine. But who
¡¨ pointing up to the evening sky
¡§who made all these?¡¨ And even the godless science of our times
while
rejecting the scriptural answer to this question
still confesses that it has
no other to give. ¡§The phenomena of matter and force
¡¨ says Tyndall
¡§lie
within our intellectual range; and as far as they reach we will
at all hazard
push our inquiries. But behind
and above
and around all
the real mystery of
the universe lies unsolved
and as far as we are concerned
is incapable of
solution.¡¨ But why incapable of solution? Why not already solved
so far as we
are concerned
in this ¡§simple
unequivocal
exhaustive
majestic¡¨ alpha of the
Bible--¡§In the beginning God created the heaven and the earth¡¨? (J. B.
Clark.)
The folly of atheism
A suggestive scene took place lately in a railway car that was
crossing the Rocky Mountains. A quiet business man
who with the other
passengers
had been silently watching the vast range of snow-clad peaks
by
him seen for the first time
said to his companion: ¡§No man
it seems to me
could look at that scene without feeling himself brought nearer to his
Creator.¡¨ A dapper lad of eighteen
who had been chiefly engaged in caressing
his moustache
pertly interrupted
¡§If you are sure there is a Creator.¡¨ ¡§You
are an atheist
¡¨ said the stranger
turning to the lad. ¡§I am an agnostic
¡¨
raising his voice. ¡§I am investigating the subject. I take nothing for granted.
I am waiting to be convinced. I see the mountains
I smell the rose
I hear the
wind; therefore
I believe that mountains
roses
and wind exist. But I cannot
see
smell
or hear God. Therefore--¡¨ A grizzled old cattle raiser glanced over
his spectacles at the boy. ¡§Did you ever try to smell with your eyes?¡¨ he said
quietly. ¡§No.¡¨ ¡§Or hear with your tongue
or taste with your ears?¡¨ ¡§Certainly
not.¡¨ ¡§Then why do you try to apprehend God with faculties which are only meant
for material things?¡¨ ¡§With what should I apprehend Him?¡¨ said the youth
with
a conceited giggle. ¡§With your intellect and soul?--but I beg your
pardon¡¨--here he paused--¡§some men have not breadth and depth enough of
intellect and soul to do this
This is probably the reason that you are an
agnostic.¡¨ The laugh in the car effectually stopped the display of any more
atheism that day.
Creation a comforting thought
When Mr. Simeon
of Cambridge
was on his dying bed
his
biographer relates that
¡§After a short pause
he looked round with one of his
bright smiles
and asked
¡¥What do you think especially gives me comfort at
this time? The creation! Did Jehovah create the world
or did I? I think He
did; now
if He made the world
He can sufficiently take care of me.¡¦¡¨
Man¡¦s limited knowledge of nature
Systems of nature! To the wisest man
wide as is his vision
nature remains of quite infinite depth
of quite infinite expansion; and all
experience thereof limits itself to some few computed centuries and square
miles
The course of nature¡¦s phases
on this our little fraction of a planet
is partially known to us
but who knows what deeper courses these depend on!
What infinitely larger cycle (of causes) our little epicycle revolves on! To
the minnow every cranny and pebble
and quality and accident
of its little
native creek may have become familiar; but does the minnow understand the ocean
tides and periodic currents
the trade winds and monsoons
and moon¡¦s eclipses;
by all which the condition of its little creek is regulated? (T. Carlyle.)
Let there be light
The creation of light
I.
DIVINELY
PRODUCED.
1. For the protection of life. Plants could not live without light;
without it
the flowers would soon wither. Even in a brief night they close
their petals
and will only open them again at the gentle approach of the
morning light. Nor could man survive in continued darkness. A sad depression
would rest upon his soul.
2. For the enjoyment of life. Light is one of God¡¦s best gifts to the
world.
3. For the instruction of life. Light is not merely a protection. It
is also an instructor. It is an emblem. It is an emblem of God
the Eternal
Light. It is an emblem of truth. It is an emblem of goodness. It is an emblem
of heaven. It is an emblem of beneficence.
II. DIVINELY
APPROVED. ¡§And God saw the light
that it was good.¡¨
1. It was good in itself. The light was pure. It was clear. It was
not so fierce as to injure. It was not so weak as to be ineffectual. It was not
so loud in its advent as to disturb.
2. It was good because adapted to the purpose contemplated by it.
Nothing else could more efficiently have accomplished its purpose toward the
life of man. Hence it is good because adapted to its purpose
deep in its
meaning
wide in its realm
happy in its influence
and educational in its
tendency.
3. We see here that the Divine Being carefully scrutinises the work
of His hands. When He had created light
He saw that it was good. May we not
learn a lesson here
to pause after our daily toil
to inspect and review its
worth. Every act of life should be followed by contemplation.
III. DIVINELY
PROPORTIONED. ¡§And God called the light day
and the darkness He called night.¡¨
1. The light was indicative of day. In this light man was to work.
The light ever active would rebuke indolence. By this light man was to read. In
this light man was to order his moral conduct.
2. The removal of light was indicative of night. In this night man
was to rest from the excitement of pleasure
and the anxiety of toil. Its
darkness was to make him feel the need of a Divine protection. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
Light and the gospel compared
I. THE
APPROPRIATENESS OF THE METAPHOR.
1. Light and the gospel resemble each other in their source and
Divine resemblance.
2. Light and the gospel resemble each other in their adaptation to
the end designed.
3. Light and the gospel resemble each other in their purity.
4. Light and the gospel resemble each other in their inseparable
connection with joy and happiness.
II. THE WILL OF
GOD RESPECTING IT.
1. That man should have the light of salvation.
2. That His Church should be the light of the world.
3. That the world should be filled with the light of the gospel of
Christ.
APPLICATION.
1. Have you the light of Divine grace in your hearts?
2. Have you this light in your families?
3. Have you this light in your neighbourhood?
4. Are you assisting to enlighten the world? (J. Burns
D. D.)
Genesis of light
I. EXPLANATION OF
THE PASSAGE.
1. ¡§God said¡¨: an anthropomorphism.
2. The God-said of Moses the God-word of John.
3. The first light chemical.
4. ¡§And God saw the light
that it was good.¡¨ It is to light that
the cloud
the sunset
the rainbow
the diamond
the violet
owe their
exquisite hues. Truly the light is sweet
and a pleasant thing it is for the
eyes to behold the Ecclesiastes 11:7). Nay
more: Light is
one of the essential conditions of all life itself--alike vegetal
animal
human
and
doubtless
angelic. Yes
there is a better curative than allopathy
or homeopathy
hydropathy or aeropathy; it is heliopathy
or light of the sun.
Physicians understand this
and so seek for their patients the sunny side of
hospitals. And so they unconsciously confirm the holy saying
¡§To you that fear
My name shall the Sun of Righteousness arise with healing in His wings¡¨ Malachi 4:2).
5. Evening: Morning. Observe the order of the words: It is not first
morning
and then evening; it is first evening
then morning: ¡§And there was
evening
and there was morning
day one.¡¨
II. MORAL MEANING
OF THE STORY.
1. God is light (1 John 1:5). For aught I know
the
apostle¡¦s message is literally true. Remember that when we are talking of light
we are moving in presence of a very subtile mystery. The origin and nature of
light is still a profound problem. True
we talk learnedly and correctly about
the laws of light; its laws of reflection
refraction
absorption
dispersion
polarization
etc. But these are only phenomena; they tell us nothing about the
nature or origin of light itself. All we know of light is merely a knowledge of
the mode and laws of its motion. We do not know the essence of light itself.
One thing is certain: light is the nearest known
sensible approach to
immateriality
being classed with its apparent kindred--heat
electricity
magnetism--among the imponderables. Indeed
the modern magnificent undulatory
theory denies that light is material
and affirms that it is but a mode of
motion. We are accustomed to say that there are but two things in the
universe--spirit and matter--and that the chasm between these is infinite.
Possibly this is one of those assumptions which
did we know more
we would
affirm less. Possibly light is an instance of what the philosophers call tertium
quid--a third something
intermediate between spirit and matter
ethereally
bridging the measureless chasm. Possibly light is God¡¦s natural expression
outflow
radiation
manifestation
vestment Psalms 104:1-2). Possibly
when the
Creator moves in that finite world we call time
He leaves light as His
personal vestige and train. His mantle ripples into light
is light itself. In
view of this possibility
how natural as well as fitting that the ancient token
of God¡¦s personal presence among the Hebrews should have been the shechinah
or
dazzling glory cloud.
2. And as God is light
so also are His children light. Expressly
are they called Sons of Light (Luke 16:8). Expressly is He called Father
of Lights (James 1:17). We know that light is latent
in every form of matter; for
when sufficiently heated
it becomes
incandescent--that is to say
self-luminous. What is flame but a mass of
heated
visibly glowing gas? True
it doth not yet appear what we shall be (1 John 3:2). Nevertheless
I believe
that light is latent within us all
and that by-and-by
at least in the case of
God¡¦s saintly children
it will stream forth; not that it will be evolved by
the action of any heat or chemical force
but that
under the free
transcendent conditions of the heavenly estate
it will ray forth
spontaneously.
3. Jesus Christ Himself
as Incarnate
is the shadow of God¡¦s light.
Infinite God
Deity as unconditioned and absolute
no man hath ever seen or can
ever see
and live (Exodus 33:20). He dwelleth in light which
no man can approach unto (1 Timothy 6:15)
is light itself.
¡§Dark with excess of light
¡¨ we poor finite beings cannot behold Him except
through the softening intervention of some medium. Therefore the Son of God
brightness of His glory and express image of His person (Hebrews 1:3)
radiance of His effulgence
and character
or impress of His substance
became incarnate
that in the
softer morning star and suffused dayspring of the Incarnation we might be able
to look on the dazzling Father of Lights
and not be dazed into blindness.
4. Jesus Christ is not only the shadow or tempered image of God: in the
very act of becoming that shadow Jesus Christ also became the Light of the John 8:12). Ah
how much the world needed
His illumination!
5. As Jesus Christ is the Light of the World
so also is His Church.
He
clear as the sun
she
fair as the moon
both together resplendent as an
army with banners (Song of Solomon 6:10).
In conclusion:
1. A word of cheer for the saint. Ye are sons of light. Recall now
how much light means. It means all that is most bright and clean
and direct
and open
and unselfish
and spotless
and lovely
and healthful
and true
and
Divine. How exceedingly great
then
your wealth! Oh
live worthily of your
rich estate.
2. A word of entreaty to the sinner. Of what use is the most
abounding light if we persist in keeping our eyes closed? As there is an
eternal day for the sons of light
so there is an eternal night for the sons of
darkness. (G. D.Boardman.)
Light and life
I. THE UPWARD
PROGRESS OF NATURE
as created by God.
II. THE ORDERLY
ARRANGEMENT OF NATURE
as settled by God.
III. THE VARIETY OF
LIFE IN NATURE
as filled by God. LESSONS:
1. Trust in God¡¦s overruling providence.
2. The study of nature should not be separated from religion. (W.
S. Smith
B. D.)
Light
I. Light is PURE.
Its property repels defilement. It traverses unstained each medium of
uncleanness.
II. Light is
BRIGHT. Indeed
what is brightness but light¡¦s clear shining.
III. Light is
LOVELY. Beauty cannot live without it. So Christ decks all on whom His beams
descend.
IV. Light is FREE.
The wealth of the wealthy cannot purchase
nor the poverty of the poor debar
from it. Waste not time in seeking a price for Him
compared with whom an
angel¡¦s worth is nothing worth.
V. Light is
ALL-REVEALING. By Christ¡¦s rays
sin is detected
as lurking in every corner of
the heart; and the world
which we so fondled
is unmasked
as a monster whose
embrace is filth
and in whose hand is the cup of death.
VI. Light is the
PARENT OF FRUITFULNESS. In Christ¡¦s absence
the heart is rank with every weed
and every noxious berry. But when His beams enliven
the seeds of grace bud
forth
the tree of faith pours down its golden fruit.
VII. Light is the
chariot which CONVEYS HEAT. Without Christ
the heart is ice. But when He
enters
a glow is kindled
which can never die.
VIII. Light is the
HARBINGER OF JOY. Heaven is a cloudless God. (Dean Law.)
The Word of God
¡§Let there be.¡¨
1. How the growth of the world points back to the eternal existence
of the Word.
2. How the eternal Word is the foundation for the growth of the
world. (J. P. Lange
D. D.)
Light
a source of life
1. Its good
as existing in
its ground.
2. Its beauty
as disclosed in its appearing. (J. P. Lange
D. D.)
The creation of light a day¡¦s work of God
1. The first day¡¦s work.
2. A whole day¡¦s work.
3. A continuous day¡¦s work.
4. A day¡¦s work rich in its consequences. (J. P. Lange
D. D.)
All the blessings of the light
We
who worship ¡§the Father of lights
¡¨ have reason every day that
we live to thank God for life and health
for countless blessings. And not
least among these may be reckoned the free gift of
and the many ¡§blessings of
the light.¡¨ For in many ways that we can tell off
at once
upon our fingers
and in very many more ways that we neither dream of nor think of
does light
minister to our health
wealth
and comfort.
1. The very birds sing at daybreak their glad welcome to the dawn
and the rising sun. And we all know and feel how cheering is the power of
light. In the sunlight rivers flash
and nature rejoices
and our hearts are
light
and we take a bright view of things.
2. So
too
light comes to revive and restore us. Darkness is
oppressive. In it we are apt to lose heart. We grow anxious
and full of fears.
With the first glimmer of light in the distance
hope awakens
and we feel a
load lifted off our minds.
3. Again
we have often felt the reassuring power of light. In the
darkness
objects that are perfectly harmless take threatening shapes; the
imagination distorts them
and our fancy creates dangers. Light shows us that
we have been alarmed at shadows: quiets and reassures us.
4. Once again
the light comes to us
often
as nothing less than a
deliverer. It reveals dangers hidden and unsuspected; the deadly reptile; the
yawning precipice; the lurking foe.
5. And when
over and above all this
we remember that light is
absolutely essential
not to health only
but to life in every form
animal and
vegetable alike
we shall heartily echo the words of the wise king in
Ecclesiastes: ¡§Truly the light is sweet; and a pleasant thing it is for the
eyes to behold the sun.¡¨ (J. B. C. Murphy
B. A.)
The first day
The work begins with light
God said
¡§Let there be light
¡¨ and at
once light shone where all before was dark. God says
¡§Repent ye--the kingdom
of heaven is at hand¡¨: then our darkness displeases us
and we are turned to
light. Thus of all those blessings hid in Christ from everlasting
and which
are predestinated to be accomplished in the creature
light is the first that
is bestowed: ¡§God shines in our hearts to give the light of the knowledge of
the glory of God in the face of Jesus Christ.¡¨ But the ¡§heaven¡¨ announced ¡§at
hand¡¨ is yet unformed. No sun yet shines
no fruits adorn the creature. Many
steps remain before the image of God will come
the man created in
righteousness
to rule all things. Then at once comes a division between what
is of God and what is not; between the natural darkness in the creature and the
light which God has made. The light shines in darkness
but the darkness
comprehends it not. Two conflicting powers are striving each to gain the day
making the old domain of darkness a continually shifting but ceaseless battle
field. Then a name is given by God both to light and darkness; that is
the
character of each is learnt according to the mind of God. Now the darkness has
a name. What God calls it
we call it. His thoughts are not altogether strange
to us. Natural as the darkness may seem to the creature
God calls it ¡§night
¡¨
or deviation. It is a turning from the right or straight line. The light is
¡§day
¡¨ or movement: there is a disturbance of the darkness. Death rules no
longer; life with light is come. Besides
in this name there is a form given to
both. Until now light and darkness were unformed
but ¡§day¡¨ and ¡§night¡¨
intimate order and distribution. Night is darkness put within limits. So with
light; it is not ¡§day¡¨ till it is arranged and put in form and order. (A.
Jukes.)
Light
natural and spiritual
Every saved man is a new creation.
I. THE DIVINE
FIAT. ¡§Let there be light.¡¨ The work of grace by which light enters the soul
is--
1. A needful work. No heart can be saved without spiritual light
to
reveal self and Jesus Christ.
2. An early work. First day.
3. A Divine work.
4. Wrought by the Word. God spake.
5. Unaided by the darkness itself. Darkness cannot help to bring
day.
6. It was unsolicited.
7. Instantaneous.
8. Irresistible.
II. DIVINE
OBSERVATION.
III. DIVINE
APPROBATION. Natural light is good. Gospel light is good. Spiritual light is
good.
1. Because of its source.
2. Because of its likeness. God is light.
3. Because of its effects.
4. It glorifies God.
IV. DIVINE
SEPARATION. The Christian man has light and darkness contending within him;
also contending forces without him.
V. DIVINE
NOMINATION. We must call things by their right names. (C. H.Spurgeon.)
Light and its laws
I. The light God
has made
and His mind concerning it.
1. Physical light--good; light
sweet; pleasant. Sun
the emblem of
many things; cheerful revealing.
2. Mental light--good. Hence in some parts an idiot is called
¡§dark.¡¨
3. Gospel light--good; the light of the story of God; light that
shined out of darkness to enlighten Gentiles; Christ
the Light of the world
the Sun of Righteousness.
4. Spiritual light--good.
5. Essential light--light of heaven from the Father of lights.
II. The law by
which it is governed.
1. Not mixed
but separated.
2. Sons of light must have no communion with darkness.
3. Churches should be lights in the world.
4. Truth not to be mixed with error.
Learn:
1. Love the light.
2. Walk in it.
3. Enforce the law concerning it. (J. C. Gray.)
The ceaseless act of the Almighty
I. THE THINGS
SPOKEN OF IN THE TEXT
LIGHT AND DARKNESS. To each of these terms there are
different significations. There is what we term natural light; there are also
mental and moral light (the illumination of the understanding and of the
heart); there are also providential
spiritual
and eternal light: each of
these has its opposite state of darkness. It is true that our text speaks only
of light natural; yet
as the works of God in nature are often typical of His
works of grace
we may follow the example of Scripture
and in tracing out the
truths it teaches
may endeavour to prove
that in the whole economy of nature
providence
and grace
it is the practice and prerogative of God to divide the
light from the darkness. Is it darkness with any of the Lord¡¦s people present?
Are His dealings mysterious? Are their state and prospects full of gloom and
obscurity? Child of sorrow
strive to bow with submission to the will of your
Heavenly Father. ¡§Let patience have her perfect work.¡¨ ¡§Light is sown for the
righteous
and gladness for the upright in heart.¡¨ ¡§Why art thou cast down
oh
my soul! and why art thou disquieted within me?¡¨ ¡§Hope in God
for thou shalt
yet praise Him who is the health of thy countenance.¡¨ ¡§At evening time it shall
be light.¡¨ Yes
then
when you are expecting the darkness to increase--when the
sun of enjoyment seems to have set forever
--then
¡§at evening time it shall be
light.¡¨ ¡§Who is among you that feareth the Lord and obeyeth the voice of His
servant: that walketh in darkness and hath no light; let him trust in the name
of the Lord
and stay upon his God.¡¨ ¡§Unto the upright there ariseth light in
darkness.¡¨ There are also spiritual and eternal lights
with their opposite
states of darkness. ¡§With Thee is the fountain of life
¡¨ said the sacred writer
and ¡§in Thy light shall we see light.¡¨ While we are in the darkness of natural
corruption and alienation from God
we know nothing aright
nothing of the
evils of sin
nothing of the astonishing love of Jesus
we have no just
conceptions of the amazing and stupendous work of redemption
or of the work of
the Holy Spirit upon the soul of man. But when in infinite compassion Jehovah
enlightens the understanding and touches the heart
we see and feel the reality
and vast importance of eternal things--we see at what an awful distance sin has
placed us from a God of spotless purity--we feel how deeply we are steeped in
the poison and pollution of iniquity--we adore the infinite wisdom manifested
in the plan of redemption
that stupendous plan
which while it redeems
pardons
and sanctifies the sinner
satisfies also the high claims of Divine
justice
magnifies the Divine perfections
and brings ¡§Glory to God in the
highest.¡¨
II. We have now to
consider WHAT MAY BE AFFIRMED CONCERNING THE OBJECTS HERE SET BEFORE US: GOD
DIVIDES THE LIGHT FROM THE DARKNESS. He is accomplishing this upon earth by a
mysterious but infinitely wise process. Much light and darkness dwells in the
minds of individuals--in the various religious sects throughout the land
and
among the different nations of the world. Whatever true light is in the world
it is of God. He is its Author. By nature all are under the dominion of the
prince of darkness
and are enslaved by Him. But a stronger than he comes upon
him
and delivers the captive from the dark dungeons of iniquity. Jesus came to
be a light to them that sit in darkness; He sends His Spirit with His Word to
subdue the rebellious heart
to awaken the insensible heart--to pour the light
of celestial day upon the benighted spirit--to show the sinner to himself
and
to reveal the saving mercy
of God in Christ--to reveal the dangers that lie in
his pathway to eternity--to give him right views of every essential truth
connected with salvation and eternal life--to teach him everything it is requisite
he should know and experience ere he can inhabit the realms of light above--in
short
to separate the light from the darkness. Hitherto the very light had
been darkness; there had been light in the intellect perhaps
but darkness in
the soul (for in many an unrenewed character the one is strangely mixed with
the other). There may even possibly exist a theoretic knowledge of Divine
things where blackest crimes dwell in the heart and are perpetrated in the
life. But where Jesus shines forth in mercy--where the Holy Spirit exerts His
power
the light is separated from the darkness: there is no longer that
heterogeneous mixture of knowledge and sin
of Divine truth in the intellect
and sin in the life
which formerly existed. Jehovah has wrought His wondrous
work
has divided the light from the darkness
has separated the sinner from
his sins
¡§and behold all things become new.¡¨ To conclude: The day of final
separation is hastening on
then
forever and at once
God will divide ¡§the
light from the darkness
¡¨ truth from error
holiness from iniquity
the
righteous from the wicked. Truth and righteousness shall dwell in heaven
error
and iniquity shall sink to hell. The wicked will then be all darkness
the
righteous will then be all light. (W. Burgess.)
Darkness before light
And do you think
children
that you were first light and then
became dark? or that you were first dark and then became light? Because when
you were a baby boy or girl you did not know much; it was very dark: now I hope
that the light of the Sun of Righteousness is upon you
that the evening has
become the morning. The morning star has risen
I hope. It is light! light! (J.
Vaughan
M. A.)
Night a necessity
A remarkable effect was mentioned by Mr. Robert Hunt (to whom the
public are indebted for much valuable information on solar and other phenomena)
to the present writer. In the course of his early experiments on the active
power of the sun¡¦s rays
he subjected a metal plate to its operation
and
of
course
received upon it a picture of the objects within its range. He now
rubbed this off
making the surface clear and fresh as at first; photographed a
different picture
and then effaced this as he had done the former. In this way
he proceeded some ten or twelve times
now receiving
and now rubbing off the
traces of the sunlight
when the question arose in his mind
¡§What would be the
result were I to transmit an electrical current through this plate?¡¨ To
determine it
he caused a current to pass through it diagonally
when
to his
astonishment
the various objects that had been
as he supposed
effaced from
the surface
rushed to it confusedly together
so that he could detect there a
medley of them all; thus proving that there had not been merely a superficial
action of the light
but that it had produced a molecular disturbance
throughout the plate. Only let
therefore
the sunbeams play uninterruptedly on
the iron
the brass
or the granite
and they will crumble into dust under an
irresistible power; the falling over them of the mantle of night alone prevents
the occurrence of a catastrophe. (C. Williams.)
It was good
The first day of creation
1. Man¡¦s fallen nature is a
very chaos
¡§without form and void
¡¨ with darkness thick and sevenfold covering
all. The Lord begins His work upon man by the visitation of the Spirit
who
enters the soul mysteriously
and broods over it
even as of old He moved upon
the face of the waters. He is the quickener of the dead soul.
2. In connection with the presence of the Holy Spirit the Lord sends
into the soul
as His first blessing
light. The Lord appeals to man¡¦s
understanding and enlightens it by the gospel.
3. If you keep your eye upon the chapter you will observe that the
light came into the world at first by the Word ¡§God said
¡¥Let there be light.¡¦¡¨
It is through the Word of God contained in this book
the Bible
that light
comes into the soul. This is that true light which lighteth every man that
cometh into the world.
4. The light which broke in upon the primeval darkness was of a very
mysterious kind
and came not according to ordinary laws
for as yet neither
sun nor moon had been set as lights in the firmament. Can we tell how spiritual
light first dawns on nature¡¦s night? How He removes darkness from the
understanding
and illuminates the intellect
is a secret reserved for Himself
alone.
5. The light came instantaneously. Six days were occupied in
furnishing the earth
but a moment sufficed for illuminating it. God works
rapidly in the operation of regeneration: as with a flash He darts light and
life into the soul. The operations of grace are gradual
but its entrance is
instantaneous. Although instantaneous
it is not
however
shallow and short
lived.
I. THE LORD SEES
WHATEVER HE CREATES. ¡§The Lord saw the light.¡¨
1. He was the sole observer of it. Neither eye of man
nor bird
nor
beast was there to behold the golden glory; but God saw the light. Newly
enlightened one
it may be you are pained because you have no Christian
companion to observe your change of heart: cease from your sorrow
for God
beholds you.
2. That light had come into the world in a noiseless manner
yet the
Lord saw it. The entrance of God¡¦s Word which giveth light is effected in
¡§solemn silence of the mind.¡¨ If men make an illumination
we can hear the
crackling of their fireworks over all the city; but when God illuminates the
earth with the sun
the orb of day arises without a sound. Although the work in
your soul has been so quiet
so hidden from the eyes of men
so unremarkable
and commonplace
yet take comfort from the text
¡§The Lord saw the light.¡¨ No
trumpet proclaimed it
but the Lord saw it; no voice went forth concerning it
but the Lord saw it and it was enough; and in your case it is the same.
3. The earth itself could not recognize the light
yet the Lord saw
it. How often do we mourn that we have scarcely more light than suffices to
reveal our darkness and make us pine for more. Oh
troubled one
lay this home
to your soul
the Lord saw the light when earth herself could not perceive it.
4. Let us not forget that besides the light there was no other
beauty. The earth
according to the Hebrew
was ¡§tohu and bohu
¡¨
which
in order to come near both to the sense and sound at the same time
I
will render ¡§anyhow and nohow.¡¨ Even so your experience may seem to be a chaos
nohow and anyhow
exactly what it should not be
a mass of unformed
conceptions
and half-formed desires
and ill-formed prayers
but yet there is
grace in you
and God sees it
even amid the dire confusion and huge uproar of
your spirit.
5. Remember
too
that when the light came it had to contend with
darkness
but God saw it none the less. So
also
in your soul there still
remains the darkness of inbred corruption
ignorance
infirmity
and tendency
to sin
and these cause a conflict
but the light is not thereby hidden from
the eyes of God.
6. For many reasons the Lord sees the light
but chiefly He sees it
because He made it
and He forsakes not the work of His own hands.
II. THE LORD
APPROVES OF WHAT HE CREATES. ¡§God saw the light that it was good.¡¨ He took
pleasure in it.
1. Now
as far as this world was concerned
light was but young and
new: and so in some of you grace is quite a novelty. You were only converted a
very little while ago
and you have had no time to try yourselves or to
develope graces
yet the Lord delights in your newborn life. Light is good at
dawn as well as at noon: the grace of God is good though but newly received; it
will work out for you greater things by-and-by
and make you more happy and
more holy
but even now all the elements of excellence are in it
and its first
day has the Divine blessing upon it.
2. Here we must mention again that it was struggling light
yet none
the less for that approved of by the Lord. We do not understand how it was that
the light and the darkness were together until God divided them
as this verse
intimates; but as John Bunyan says
¡§No doubt darkness and light here began
their quarrel
¡¨ for what communion hath light with darkness. My brethren
I am
sure you are no strangers to this conflict
nor is it to you altogether a thing
of the past. You are in the conflict still. Still grace and sin are warring in
you
and will do so till you are taken home. Let this help you
O ye who are
perplexed; remember that struggling as the light is
God approves of it
and
calls it good.
3. As yet the light had not been divided from the darkness
and the
bounds of day and night were not fixed. And so in young beginners; they hardly
know which is grace and which is nature
what is of themselves and what is of
Christ
and they make a great many mistakes. Yet the Lord does not mistake
but
approves of that which His grace has placed in them.
4. As yet the light and darkness had not been named: it was
afterwards that the Lord called the light ¡§day
¡¨ and the darkness ¡§night
¡¨ yet
He saw the light that it was good. And so
though you do not know the names of
things
God knows your name.
5. The light of the first day could not reveal much of beauty
for
there was none
and so the light within does not yet reveal much to you; and
what it
does reveal is uncomely
but the light itself is good
whatever it may
make manifest.
6. But why did God say that light was good?
III. THE LORD
QUICKLY DISCERNS ALL THE GOODNESS AND BEAUTY WHICH EXISTS IN WHAT HE CREATES.
The Lord did not merely feel approbation for the light
but He perceived reason
for it: He saw that it was good. He could see goodness in it where
perhaps
no
one else would have been able to do so.
1. Let us note
then
that light is good in itself; and so is Divine
grace. What a wonderful thing light is! Just think of it! How simple it is
and
yet how complex. Light
too
how common it is! We see it everywhere
and all
the year round. Light
too
how feeble and yet how strong! Its beams would not
detain us one-half so forcibly as a cobweb; yet how mighty it is
and how
supreme! Scarcely is there a force in the universe of God which is more potent.
The grace of God in the same manner is contemptible in the eyes of man
and yet
the majesty of omnipotence is in it
and it is more than conqueror.
2. Light is good
not only in itself
but in its warfare. The light
contended with darkness
and it was good for darkness to be battled with. Grace
has come unto you
and it will fight with your sin
and it ought to be fought
with
and to be overcome.
3. The light which came from God was good in its measure. There was
neither too much of it nor too little. If the Lord had sent a little more light
into the world we might all have been dazzled into blindness
and if He had
sent less we might have groped in gloom. God sends into the newborn Christian
just as much grace as he can bear; He does not give him the maturity of after
years
for it would be out of place.
4. Light was good as a preparation for God¡¦s other works. He knew
that light
though it was but the beginning
was necessary to the completion of
His work. Light was needful
that the eye of man might rejoice in the works of
God
and so God saw the light that it was good
in connection with what was to
be. And
oh
I charge you who have to deal with young people
look at the grace
they have in them in relation to what will be in them.
5. What a mass of thought one might raise from this one truth of the
goodness of light and the goodness of grace
as to their results. Light
produces the beauty which adorns the world
for without it all the world were
uncomely blackness. Light¡¦s pencil paints the whole
and even so all beauty of
character is the result of grace. Light sustains life
for life in due time
would dwindle and die out without it
and thus grace alone sustains the virtues
and graces of the believer; without daily grace we should be spiritually dead.
Light heals many sicknesses
and grace brings healing in its wings. Light is
comfort
light is joy
the prisoner in his darkness knows it to be so; and so
the grace of God produces joy and peace wherever it is shed abroad. Light
reveals and so does grace
for without it we could not see the glory of God in
the face of Jesus Christ.
IV. GOD RECORDED
HIS ESTIMATE OF THIS FIRST DAY¡¦S PRODUCT. ¡§God saw the light that it was good.¡¨
1. This leads me to say to the young Christian
the Lord would have
you encouraged.
2. My last word is to older Christian people. If the Lord says that
His work in the first day is good
I want you to say so too. Do not wait till
you see the second
third
fourth
fifth
or sixth day before you feel
confidence in the convert and offer Him fellowship. If God speaks encouragingly
so soon
I want you to do the same. (C. H. Spurgeon.)
And God called the light day
and the darkness He called night:--
Light
natural and spiritual
The Holy Ghost mysteriously quickens the dead heart
excites
emotions
longings
desires.
I. DIVINE FIAT:
God said
Let there be light
and there was light. The Lord Himself needed no
light to enable Him to discern His creatures. He looked upon the darkness
and
resolved that He would transform its shapeless chaos into a fair and lovely
world.
1. We shall observe that the work of grace by which light enters the
soul is a needful work. God¡¦s plan for the sustaining of vegetable and animal
life
rendered light necessary. Light is essential to life. It is light which
first shows us our lost estate; for we know nothing of it naturally. This
causes pain and anguish of heart; but that pain and anguish are necessary
in
order to bring us to lay hold on Jesus Christ
whom the light next displays to
us. No man ever knows Christ till the light of God shines on the cross.
2. Next observe it was a very early work. Light was created on the
first day
not on the third
fourth
or sixth
but on the first day; and one of
the first operations of the Spirit of God in a man¡¦s heart is to give light
enough to see his lost estate
and to perceive that he cannot save himself from
it but must look elsewhere.
3. It is well for us to remember that light giving is a Divine work.
God said
¡§Let there be light
¡¨ and there was light.
4. This Divine work is wrought by the Word. God did not sit in
solemn silence and create the light
but He spake. He said
¡§Light be
¡¨ and
light was. So the way in which we receive light is by the Word of God. Faith
cometh by hearing
and hearing by the Word of God. Christ Himself is the
essential Word
and the preaching of Christ Jesus is the operative Word. We
receive Christ actually when God¡¦s power goes with God¡¦s Word--then have we
light. Hence the necessity of continually preaching the Word of God.
5. While light was conferred in connection with the mysterious
operation of the Holy Spirit
it was unaided by the darkness itself. How could
darkness assist to make itself light? Nay
the darkness never did become light.
It had to give place to light
but darkness could not help God. The power which
saves a sinner is not the power of man.
6. As this light was unassisted by darkness
so was it also
unsolicited. There came no voice out of that thick darkness
¡§Oh God
enlighten
us¡¨; there was no cry of prayer. The first work of grace in the heart does not
begin with man¡¦s desire
but with God¡¦s implanting the desire.
7. This light came instantaneously.
8. As it is instantaneous
so it is irresistible. Darkness must give
place when God speaks.
II. DIVINE
OBSERVATION. ¡§And God saw the light.¡¨ Does He not see everything? Yes
beloved
He does; but this does not refer to the general perception of God of all His
works
but is a something special. ¡§God saw the light¡¨--He looked at it with
complacency
gazed upon it with pleasure. A father looks upon a crowd of boys
in a school and sees them all
but there is one boy whom he sees very
differently from all the rest: he watches him with care: it is his own child
and his eye is specially there. Though you have come here sighing and groaning
because of inbred sin
yet the Lord sees what is good in you
for He has put it
there. Satan can see the light and he tries to quench it: God sees it and
preserves it. The Lord watches you
and He sees the light. He has His eye
always fixed upon the work of grace that is in your soul.
III. DIVINE
APPROBATION. ¡§God saw the light
that it was good.¡¨ Light is good in all
respects.
1. The natural light is good. Solomon says
¡§It is a pleasant thing
to behold the sun¡¨; but you did not want Solomon to inform you upon that point.
Any blind man who will tell you the tale of his sorrows will be quite
philosopher enough to convince you that light is good.
2. Gospel light is good. ¡§Blessed are the eyes which see the things
which ye see.¡¨ You only need to travel into heathen lands
and witness the
superstition and cruelty of the dark places of the earth
to understand that
gospel light is good.
3. As for spiritual light
those that have received it long for more
of it
that they may see yet more and more the glory of heaven¡¦s essential
light! O God
Thou art of good the unmeasured Sea; Thou art of light both Soul
and Source
and Centre.
IV. DIVINE
SEPARATION. It appears that though God made light there was still darkness in
the world: ¡§And God divided the light from the darkness.¡¨ Beloved
the moment
you become a Christian
you will begin to fight. You will be easy and
comfortable enough
as long as you are a sinner
but as soon as you become a
Christian
you will have no more rest.
1. One part of the Divine work in the soul of man is to make a
separation in the man himself. Do you feel an inward contention and war going
on? Permit me to put these two verses together--¡§O wretched man that I am
who
shall deliver me from the body of this death? There is therefore now no
condemnation to them which are in Christ Jesus
who walk not after the flesh
but after the Spirit.¡¨ How can these two things be consistent? Ask the
spiritual man: he will tell you
¡§The Lord divideth between light and
darkness.¡¨
2. Whereas there is a division within the Christian
there is
certain to be a division without. So soon as ever the Lord gives to any
believer light
he begins to separate himself from the darkness. He separates
himself from the world¡¦s religion
finds out where Christ is preached
and goes
there. Then as to society
the dead
carnal religionist can get on very well in
ordinary society
but it is not so when he has light. I cannot go to light
company
wasting the evening
showing off my fine clothes
and talking
frivolity and nonsense.
V. DIVINE
NOMINATION. Things must have names; Adam named the beasts
but God Himself
named the day and the night. ¡§And God called the light day
and the darkness
called He night.¡¨ It is a very blessed work of grace to teach us to call things
by their right names. The spiritual aspirations of God¡¦s people never can be
evil. Carnal reason calls them folly
but the Lord would have us call them
good. (C. H. Spurgeon.)
Lessons from the night
1. One of the first lessons
which God intends us to learn from the night is a larger respect for wholesome
renovation. Perhaps this may not show itself in any great lengthening of our
bodily life
but rather in a more healthy spirit
less exposed to that
prevailing unrest which fills the air and which troubles so many minds.
2. The night is the season of wonder. A new and strangely equipped
population
another race of beings
another sequence of events
comes into and
fills the world of the mind. Men who have left their seal upon the world
and
largely helped in the formation of its deepest history--men whose names stand
up through the dim darkness of the past
great leaders and masters
have
admitted that they learned much from the night.
3. The next thought belonging to the night is that then another
world comes out
and as it were
begins its day. There is a rank of creatures
which moves out into activity as soon as the sun has set. This thought should
teach us something of tolerance; senses
dispositions
and characters are very
manifold and various among ourselves. Each should try to live up to the light
he has
and allow a brother to do the same.
4. Such extreme contrasts as are involved in light and darkness may
tell us that we have as yet no true measure of what life is
and it must be
left to some other conditions of existence for us to realize in anything like
fulness the stores
the processes
the ways of the Kingdom of the Lord which
are provided for such as keep His law.
5. Let us learn that
whether man wake or sleep
the universe is in
a state of progress
¡§the whole creation groaneth and travaileth in pain
together.¡¨
6. Let us learn to use day rightly and righteously
to accept the
grace and the forces of the Lord while it is called today
and then the night
shall have no forbidding
no repulsive significance.
The evening and the
morning were the first day
The first day
I. THINK OF THE
DAY¡¦S BEGINNING. Evening came before morning. Light issued out of darkness. The
first goings of creative power were in obscurity.
II. THE DAY¡¦S
CHARACTER--¡§Evening and morning.¡¨ In all life are alternations of darkness and
light--shadow and sunshine. Rest is the condition of labour
and labour of
rest.
III. THE DAY¡¦S
RELIGION. There was a morning and an evening sacrifice.
IV. THE DAY¡¦S END.
That which began in darkness is followed by darkness
which ushers in a new
day. ¡§The night cometh.¡¨ (The Preacher¡¦s Monthly.)
The evening and the morning
I. Let us reflect
on what is God¡¦s way of estimating THE PERIODS OF HISTORY. I do no unjust
disparagement to the common way of recording the course of human history
when
I say that it takes the form of a record of failures and catastrophes coming
down upon splendid beginnings of empire. It is the morning and the evening that
make the day; not the evening and the morning. For one Motley to tell the story
of the Rise
there be many Gibbons to narrate the Decline and Fall. History
as
told in literature
is a tragedy
and ends with a death. So human history is
ever looking backward; and the morning and the evening make the day. But it is
not so that God writes history. The annals of mankind in the Holy Book begin in
the darkness of apostasy; but the darkness is shot through with gleams of hope
the first rays of the dawn. The sentence of death is illuminated with the
promise of a Saviour: and the evening and the morning are the first day. There
is night again when the flood comes down and the civilization and the
wickedness of the primeval world are whelmed beneath it. But the flood clears
off with a rainbow
and it is proved to have been the clearing of the earth for
a better progress
for the rearing of a godly race
of whom by and by the
Christ shall come according to the flesh: and the evening and the morning are
the second day. And again the darkness falls upon the chosen race. They have
ceased from off the land of promise. They are to be traced through a marvellous
series of events down into the dark
where we dimly recognize the descendants
of heroic Abraham and princely Joseph in the gangs and coffles of slaves
wearing themselves out in the brickyards of the land of Egypt
the house of
bondage. And this--is this the despairing evening of so bright a patriarchal
age as that gone by? No
no! it is so that men reckon
but not God. This is the
evening
not of yesterday
but of tomorrow. The elements of a new civilization
are brooding there in that miserable abode of slavery: of a civilization that
shall take ¡§the learning of the Egyptians¡¨ and infuse into it the spirit of a
high and fraternal morality
that shall take its religious pomps and rituals
and cleanse them of falsehoods and idolatries and inform them with the
spiritual worship of the one invisible God. The holy and priestly civilization
of David and Solomon
of the sons of Asaph and the sons of Korah
is to come
forth out of that dark chaos of Egyptian slavery. And the evening and the
morning shall be the fourth day. We need not trace the history of humanity and
of the Church on through all its pages. We have only to carry the spirit of
this ancient story forward into later times
and the dark places of history
become irradiated
and lo! the night is light about us. We behold ¡§the decline
and fall of the Roman Empire¡¨--that awful convulsion of humanity; nation
dashing against nation; civilization
with its monuments and records
its
institutions and laws
going down out of sight
overwhelmed by an inrushing sea
of barbaric invasion
and it looks to us
as we gaze
like nothing but
destruction and the end
ruin and failure. So it seems to us at this distance:
so it seemed to that great historian
Gibbon. But in the midst of the very
wreck and crash of it sat that great believer
Augustine
and wrote volume
after volume of the Civitas Dei--the ¡§city of God
¡¨ the ¡§city that hath
foundations
¡¨ the ¡§kingdom that cannot be moved.¡¨ This awful catastrophe
he
tells the terrified and quaking world
is not the end--it is the beginning.
History does not end so. This is the way its chapters open. The night was a
long night
but it had an end: and now we look back and see how through all its
dark and hopeless hours God was slowly grinding materials for the civilization
of modern times. So long
so long it seemed: but the morning came at last. And
the evening and the morning made the day. And we
today
are only in the
morning twilight
after just such another convulsion and obscuration of the
world. I have spoken to you now of this principle of the divine order
which
begins the day with the evening
as illustrated
first in creation
and then in
history; and now
can I safely leave it with you to make the more practical
application of it--
II. TO THE COURSE
OF HUMAN LIFE? For this is where you most need to know and feel it
and where
I suspect
you most fail to see it. It has been such a common blunder
from the
days of Job and his friends down to the days when Christ rebuked the Pharisees
and from those days again down to ours--the blunder of supposing that the
evening goes with the day before
and not with the day after--that the dark
times of human life are a punishment for what is past
instead of being
as
they always are to them that love God
a discipline and preparation for what is
coming. There are many and many such eventides in life--times of enforced
repose; hard times
when business stagnates or runs with adverse current; times
of sickness
pain
seclusion; times of depression
sorrow
bereavement
fear.
Such are the night times of life; and blessed are they who at such times have
learned to ¡§look forward
and not back¡¨; to say
not
What have I done
that
this thing should befall me? but
rather
What is God preparing for me
and for
what is He preparing me
that thus He should lovingly chasten and instruct me
in the night season? Then lift your heads
ye saints
and answer: ¡§No
no! this
is not the end; this is the beginning. The evening is come
and the morning
also cometh; and the evening and the morning are the day. Look! look at the
glory of the evening sky. It shall be fair weather in the morning
for the sky
is red.¡¨ So shall it ¡§come to pass that at evening time it shall be light.¡¨ (L.
W. Bacon.)
The first day
¡§The evening and the morning were the first day.¡¨ The evening came
first. God¡¦s glorious universe sprang into existence in obscurity. ¡§There was
the hiding of His power.¡¨ It is very remarkable that the creation work and the
redemption work of God were both alike shrouded in darkness. When God spake
and the worlds were made
it is said
¡§darkness was upon the face of the deep.¡¨
When Christ hung upon the cross
having finished His work of love
it is said
¡§There was a darkness over all the land unto the ninth hour.¡¨ What a lesson
does this teach us! The glory was so exceeding that it needed to be
overshadowed: for us the veil was thrown over Jehovah¡¦s brightness; the light
would have been too strong for mortal eyes; the diadem of the King of kings
would have been too dazzling to meet our gaze
had it not been dimmed for our
sakes. Nevertheless
hidden as He is in unapproachable majesty
His secret is
with them that fear Him; and while the evening lasts
they wait with longing
expectation for that morning when they shall see no longer through a glass
darkly
but rather face to face. ¡§The evening and the morning were the first
day.¡¨ It was the alternation of light and shade which constituted this first
day; and is it not so with the spiritual days of a Christian? Darkness and
light succeed each other. If
then
thou art one who
ass child of God
art
sitting in darkness
there is comfort in this word for thee. If it is evening
now
the sunlight shall arise again. Even the record of God¡¦s creation speaks
to thee of consolation: there is in it a promise of joy to come; thy day would
not be perfect
if there were not a morning to succeed thy night. But if thou
art one with whom there is the brightness of sunshine in providence and in
grace
this sentence speaks to thee in warning. Although now thou canst look up
to an unclouded sky
and there is light in thy dwelling and in thine heart;
remember the evening shadows. The longest day has its sunset. God hath ordained
the alternation of light and darkness. As it is with individuals
so it is with
the whole Church of Christ; and now it is peculiarly with her the night time
the deepest night she has ever known
and
blessed be God
the last night. She
standeth now beneath the darkened sky of that ¡§tribulation¡¨ which is to issue
in the millennial brightness of her coming Bridegroom¡¦s kingdom. How often does
she inquire
¡§Watchman
what of the night?¡¨ and the answer is
¡§The morning
cometh
still as yet there will be night: if ye inquire already
yet must ye
return; come and inquire again¡¨ (Isaiah 21:12
Geneva version). It shallbe
darker yet with her
ere the breaking morn appeareth: but how glorious will be
the dawn of that light
when the Sun of Righteousness Himself shall arise with
healing in His beams. Truly
said David
when he saw the glory of the King of
kings and spake of Him--¡§He shall be as the light of the morning when the sun
ariseth
even a morning without clouds.¡¨ ¡§Even so
¡¨ Saviour
¡§come quickly
¡¨
¡§The evening and the morning were the first day.¡¨ I cannot help noticing
another thing in the consideration of this subject. The evening of a natural
day is the season of rest from labour: ¡§Man goeth forth unto his work and to
his labour until the evening.¡¨ In the darkness of the night
the various
occupations of busy men are laid aside
and the world is hushed in silence
waiting the returning morning. Is there nothing of this in the Christian¡¦s
experience? Can he work when the night sets in upon his soul? Does not he
too
wait and long for sunrise? ¡§The evening and the morning were the first day.¡¨
There is yet another lesson in these words
which I would notice. What is it
which constitutes the evening of a natural day? It is not that the position of
the sun is changed; but that the inhabitants of the earth are turned from Him.
Let us not forget that it is so with the evening of the soul. There are some in
the religious world
who seem to be just like the philosophers of a former day
who believed and taught that the sun moved round our planet; they speak as if
the light of the Christian were caused by some change in Christ
the eternal
Sun of Righteousness. Nay
it is not so. Our Saviour God is ever the same
in
the glory of His salvation
in the brightness of His redemption; but we alas I
turn away our faces from Him
and are in darkness
it is sin which causes it to
be evening with us; it is our iniquity which has made it dark. There is one
thought connected with the evening and the morning
which is so precious to me
that I cannot pass it over. There was
under the law
a sacrifice appointed
both for the morning and the evening. Ah! when it is daylight with thee
Christian
and thou goest into the sanctuary
having boldness to enter into the
very holiest
having free access unto the Father; thy soul can there offer its
sacrifice of willing
loving praise. But the evening cometh
and then thou dost
shrink back from saying aught to God
from bringing thine offering with so
heavy a heart. Still
go even then; and pleading the blood of that richer
sacrifice which never faileth to bring down a blessing
lay the tribute of thy
broken heart beside it
and ask thy God
for His sake not to despise it. He
will not do so
for
in the provisions of His temple service
there was a
sacrifice for the evening too. (The Protoplast.)
The record of the first day of creation reminds us of the first
day of human life
How rapidly do the ¡§few days¡¨ which succeed the first evening and
morning in the life of man
pass away. I think I have somewhere read of a
philosopher who was seen in tears
and on being asked
¡§Why weepest thou?¡¨
answered
¡§I weep because there is so much for me to do
and my life is too
short to do it in.¡¨ Whether the philosopher said so or not
I am sure my own
heart has said it oftentimes
and so
I doubt not
have the hearts of others.
Sorrow and sickness are the two great means by which many a young heart has
become aged; the mind is early matured
and the stranger wondering says
¡§How
old such an one is in character!¡¨ Yet every day of natural life has its burden
as foreordained of God. There is one thought connected with the day
that is a
very solemn one. The evening and the morning will succeed each other
without
break or change
year after year; but a day will come upon us
the evening of
which we shall never see; a sun will rise that we shall never see go down; the
morning will come and find us in a body of sin and suffering
and before the
evening we shall have passed away. (The Protoplast.)
Let there be a firmament
The atmosphere
I.
THE
ATMOSPHERE IS NECESSARY TO THE POSSIBILITY OF HUMAN LIFE.
1. Gathers up the vapours.
2. Throws them down again in rain
snow
or dew
when needed.
3. Modifies and renders more beautiful the light of the sun.
4. Sustains life.
II. IT IS
NECESSARY FOR THE PRACTICAL PURPOSES OF LIFE.
1. The atmosphere is necessary for the transmission of sound. If
there were no atmosphere
the bell might be tolled
the cannon might be fired
a thousand voices might render the music of the sweetest hymn
but not the
faintest sound would be audible. Thus all commercial
educational
and social
intercourse would be at an end
as men would not be able to hear each other
speak. We seldom think of the worth of the atmosphere around us
never seen
seldom felt
but without which the world would be one vast grave.
2. The atmosphere is necessary for many purposes related to the
inferior objects of the world. Without it the plants could not live
our
gardens would be divested of useful vegetables
and beautiful flowers.
Artificial light would be impossible. The lamp of the mines could not be
kindled. The candle of the midnight student could never have been lighted. The
bird could not have wended its way to heaven¡¦s gate to utter its morning song
as there would have been no air to sustain its flight.
III. LET US MAKE A
PRACTICAL IMPROVEMENT OF THE SUBJECT.
1. To be thankful for the air we breathe. How often do we recognize
the air by which we are surrounded as amongst the chief of our daily blessings
and as the immediate and continued gift of God? How seldom do we utter praise
for it.
2. To make the best use of the life it preserves. To cultivate a
pure life. To speak golden words. To make a true use of all the subordinate
ministries of nature. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
Uses of the atmosphere
1. The atmosphere is the
great fund and storehouse of life to plants and animals; its carbonic acid is
the food of the one
and its oxygen the nourishment of the other; without its
carbonic acid the whole vegetable kingdom would wither
and without its oxygen
the blood of animals
¡§which is the life thereof
¡¨ would be only serum and
water.
2. It is a refractor of light. Without it the sun¡¦s rays would fall
perpendicularly and directly on isolated portions of the world
and with a
velocity which would probably render them invisible; but by means of the
atmosphere they are diffused in a softened effulgence through the entire globe.
3. It is a reflector of light. Hence its mysterious
beautiful
and
poetical blue
contrasting and yet harmonizing with the green mantle of the
world.
4. It is the conservator and disperser and modifier of heat. By its
hot currents constantly flung from the equatorial regions of the world
even
the cold of the frigid zones is deprived of its otherwise unbearable rigour;
while the mass of cold air always rushing from about the poles towards the
equator quenches half the heat of tropical suns
and condenses the vapour so
needful to the luxuriant vegetation.
5. It is the great vibratory of sound
the true sounding board of
the world
and without it the million voices and melodies of this earth would
all be dumb; it would be a soundless desert
where an earthquake would not make
a whisper. By its pressure the elastic fluids of animal bodies are prevented
from bursting their slender vessels and causing instantaneous destruction. Its
winds propel our ships
its electricity conveys our messages. By the aid of its
warm gales and gentle dews the desert can be made to blossom as the rose. (John
Cobley.)
The composition of the atmosphere
But the atmosphere with which the Creator has surrounded the earth
is wonderful also in its composition. The two elements of which it chiefly
consists--oxygen and nitrogen--are mixed in definite proportions
as 20 to 80
in 100 parts. If this proportion were but slightly altered
as nitrogen
destroys life and extinguishes flame
the result of any perceptible increase of
it would be that fires would lose their strength and lamps their brightness
plants would wither
and man
with the whole animal kingdom
would perform
their functions with difficulty and pain. Or if the quantity of nitrogen were
much diminished
and the oxygen increased
the opposite effect would be
produced. The least spark would set anything combustible in a flame; candles
and lamps would burn with the most brilliant blaze for a moment
but would be
quickly consumed. If a house caught fire
the whole city would be burnt down.
The animal fluids would circulate with the greatest rapidity
brain fever would
soon set in
and the lunatic asylums would be filled. A day is coming when ¡§the
elements shall melt with fervent heat.¡¨ God has but to subtract the nitrogen
from the air
and the whole world would instantly take fire; such is the
activity and energy of the oxygen when left uncontrolled. (Brewer.)
Interesting illustrations of design in the atmosphere
Vast quantities of oxygen are daily consumed by animals
and by
combustion. Carbonic acid gas is evolved instead. But this gas is so injurious
that when the air is charged with only one-tenth part of it
it is wholly unfit
for animals to breathe
and is unsuitable to the support of fires. The
vegetable kingdom meets the whole difficulty. It gives out oxygen and takes in
carbonic acid in amply sufficient measure to balance the disturbance created by
the animals. Thus every breath we draw instructs us to admire the wisdom of Him
who doeth all things well. (Brewer.)
Again
oxygen is a little heavier and nitrogen a little lighter
than common air. Had it been otherwise
had nitrogen been a little heavier
and
carbonic acid gas been a little lighter
we must have breathed them again
so
that
instead of breathing wholesome air
we should have been constantly
inhaling the very gases which the lungs had rejected as offal. The consequences
would have been most fatal. Life would have been painful; diseases ten times
more prevalent than they now are; and death would have cut us off at the very
threshold of our existence. (Brewer.)
Further
if the air had possessed an odour
such as that of
phosphuretted hydrogen
it would have interfered not only with the perfume of
flowers
but also with our faculty of discriminating wholesome foods by their
smell. If it had been coloured like chlorine gas
or a London fog
we should
have seen only the thick air
and not the objects around us. Had it been less
transparent than it now is
it would have obstructed the rays of the sun
diminished their light and warmth
and abridged our power of distant vision. (Brewer.)
The air is the great means of life
not only to man
but to all
living things. It is also essential to combustion. Without it no fire would
burn
and all our industries which depend on the use of fire would necessarily
be at a standstill. By the heat of the sun an immense quantity of water in the
form of vapour is daily carried up from the earth
rivers
and seas--amounting
indeed
to many millions of gallons! In the course of a year it is not less
than forty thousand cubic miles! But if there were no atmosphere this
circulation could not exist. There would be no rain
rivers
or seas
but one
vast desert. Neither could the clouds be buoyed up from the surface of the
earth
nor could the winds blow to disperse noxious vapours
and produce a
system of ventilation among the abodes of men. (Brewer.)
The influence of sin seen in its deterioration
There is something in the earth¡¦s atmosphere that blights and
injures. It is not the same healthful
genial
joyous firmament that it was
when God created it. (H. Bonar.)
Genesis of the sky
I. EXPLANATION OF
THE PASSAGE.
1. Ancient conception of the sky. To the ancient Hebrew the sky
seemed a vast
outstretched
concave surface or expansion
in which the stars
were fastened
and over which the ethereal waters were stored. (See Proverbs 8:27; Hebrews 1:12; Isaiah 34:4; Isaiah 40:22; Job 22:14; Job 37:18; Psalms 148:4.) ¡§Ah
all this
¡¨ you
tell me
¡§is scientifically false; the sky is not a material arch
or tent
or
barrier
with outlets for rain; it is only the matterless limit of vision.¡¨
Neither
let me again remind you
is there any such thing as ¡§sunrise¡¨ or
¡§sunset.¡¨ To use such words is to utter what science declares is a falsehood.
And yet your astronomer
living in the blaze of science
fresh from the
discovery of spectrum analysis and satellites of Mars
and knowing too that his
words are false
still persists in talking of sunrise and sunset. Will you
then
deny to the untutored Moses
speaking in the child-like language of that
ancient infarct civilization
the privilege which you so freely accord to the
nineteenth-century astronomer?
2. Panorama of the emerging sky. Everywhere is still a shapeless
desolate chaos. And now a sudden break is seen. A broad
glorious band or
expanse glides through the angry
chaotic waste
separating it into two
distinct masses--the lower
the heavy fluids; the upper
the ethereal vapours.
The band
still bearing upward the vapour
swells and mounts and arches and
vaults
till it becomes a concave hemisphere or dome. That separating
majestic
dimension we cannot to this day call by a better name than the expanse. And
that expanse God called heavens. And there was evening and there was morning
a
second day.
II. MORAL MEANING
OF THE STORY.
1. The heavens suggest the soul¡¦s true direction--it is upward. To
express moral excellence by terms of altitude is an instinct. How naturally we
use such phrases as these: ¡§Exalted worth
high resolve
lofty purpose
elevated views
sublime character
eminent purity!¡¨ How naturally
too
we use
opposite phrases: ¡§Low instincts
base passions
degraded character
grovelling
habits
stooping to do it!¡¨ Doubtless here
too
is the secret of the arch
and
especially the spire
as the symbol of Christian architecture: the Church is an
aspiration. Even the very word ¡§heaven¡¨ itself
like the Greek Ouranos
means
height
and
according to the etymologists
is an Anglo-Saxon word
heo-fan;
meaning what is heaved up
lifted
heav-en--heaven. Well
then
may the
vaulting sky stand as a symbol of human aspiration. The true life is a
perpetual soaring and doming; or rather
like the mystic temple of Ezekiel¡¦s
vision
it is an inverted spiral
forever winding upward
and broadening as it
winds (Ezekiel 41:7). The soul¡¦s true life is a
perpetual exhalation; her affections evermore evaporating from her own great
deep
and mounting heavenward in clouds of incense.
2. As the heavens suggest human aspirations
so do the heavens
suggest their complement
Divine perfections. It is true
e.g.
in
respect to God¡¦s immensity. Nothing seems so remote from us
or gives such an
idea of vastness
as the dome of heaven. Climb we ever so high on mountain top
the stars are still above us. Again: It is true in respect to God¡¦s
sovereignty. Nothing seems to be so absolutely beyond human control or
modification as the sun and stars of heaven. Again: It is true in respect to
God¡¦s spirituality. Nothing seems so like that rarity of texture which we
instinctively ascribe to pure
incorporeal spirit
as that subtile
tenuous
ether which
it is believed
pervades the clear
impalpable sky
and
indeed
all immensity. And in this subtile ether
so invisible to sight
so impalpable
to touch
so diffused throughout earth and the spaces of the heavenly expanse
we may behold a symbol of that invisible
intangible
ever-omnipresent One who
Himself is Spirit; and who
accordingly
can be worshipped only in spirit and
truth (John 4:24). Again: it is true in respect
to God¡¦s purity. Nothing is so exquisite an emblem of absolute spotlessness and
eternal chastity
as the unsullied expanse of heaven
untrodden by mortal foot
unswept by aught but angel wings. Again: It is true in respect to God¡¦s
beatitude. We cannot conceive a more perfect emblem of felicity and moral
splendour than light. Everywhere and evermore
among rudest nations as well as
among most refined
light is instinctively taken as the first and best possible
emblem of whatever is most intense and perfect in blessedness and glory. And
whence comes light--the light which arms us with health
and fills us with joy
and tints flower and cloud with beauty
and floods mountain and mead with
splendour--but from the sky? Well
then
may the shining heaven be taken as the
elect emblem of Him who decketh Himself with light as with a robe (Psalms 104:2)
who dwelleth in light
which no man can approach unto (1 Timothy 6:16)
who Himself is the
Father of lights (James 1:17). (G. D.Boardman.)
The atmosphere
The word ¡§atmosphere¡¨ indicates
in general
its character and its
relation to the earth. It is compounded of two Greek words
one signifying
vapour and the other sphere
and
taken together
they denote a sphere of
vapour enveloping or enwrapping the whole earth. The ancients regarded the air
as children do now
as nothing at all. A vessel filled only with air
had nothing
in it. ¡§As light as air¡¨ is a proverbial expression
but a very false one
to
denote nothingness. We may not be aware of it
but yet it is true that the
breathing of the air yields us three-quarters of our nourishment
while the
other quarter only is supplied by the food
solid and liquid
of which we
partake. The principal parts of this food are oxygen
hydrogen
nitrogen
and
carbonic acid
and these
too
are the constituent elements of the atmosphere.
There is a sense
therefore
in which we may truly say of the air
what the
apostle and the old Greek poet before him said of God
¡§In it we live and move
and have our being.¡¨ The weight of the atmosphere is so great that its pressure
upon a man of ordinary size has been computed to be about fourteen or fifteen
tons. A man of large frame would have to carry one or two tons additional. But
as the air¡¦s pressure is lateral as well as vertical
and equal upon all sides
and parts of every body
it not only does not crush or injure the frailest
flower
but actually feeds and nourishes it. There are other than atmospheric
burdens
and those which consciously press more heavily
which yet a man may
find a great blessing ill carrying with a cheerful face and courage. The
atmosphere is tenanted by myriad forms of life
vegetable and animal. A French
naturalist of great eminence
M. Miquel
writing upon ¡§Living Organisms of the
Atmosphere
¡¨ has found numberless organisms dancing in the light of a single
sunbeam. The atmosphere
moreover
is the great agent by which nature receives
the wonderful colours which are her most beautiful adorning. It is owing to the
reflection of the sun¡¦s rays that the sky and the distant horizon assume that
beautiful azure hue which is subject to endless variations. It is owing to the refraction
of these rays as they pass obliquely through the aerial strata
that we have
the splendours of the morning and evening twilight
and that we seem to see the
sun three or four minutes before he actually rises above the eastern horizon
and three or four minutes after he actually disappears below the western
horizon. If it were not for the atmosphere
the light would instantaneously
disappear as the sun sank below the horizon
and leave the world in utter
darkness
while at his rising in the morning the world would pass in an instant
from complete darkness into a flood of dazzling and blinding light. Such daily
and sudden shocks to vision would be painful
and probably destructive to
sight. Without the atmosphere there would have been no place in the universe
for the dwelling place of man
because without it the waters would have
prevailed. But as by the atmosphere the waters below were
on the second day of
the creative week
divided from those above
a place was provided suitable for
the abode of man. Without the air
which gathers the moisture in the clouds and
sends it down again upon the earth
there could be no precipitation of rain or
snow. Without the atmosphere there could be no purifying winds
which are but
air in motion
no medium to transmit and diffuse the light and heat of the sun
no agent to modify and make surpassingly beautiful the light of the sun
and no
possibility of respiration for plants or animals
without which it would be
impossible to maintain any form of organic life. The atmosphere
too
is
indispensable for all the practical purposes of life. If by some miraculous
intervention it should be made possible for human life to exist without the
air
it would be useless and vain. The air is necessary for the transmission of
sound. Without it
the bell might be tolled
the cannon might be fired
a great
multitude of voices might unite to render the music of the sweetest hymn
but
not the faintest sound would be audible either to the performers or to the
listeners. In the worship of God we should need no tune books
no organ
no
choir
no preacher
¡§for there is no speech nor language where their voice is
not heard
¡¨ and the voices of none of these could be heard. You might breathe
or even loudly speak your words of love into the very ear of some dear one
and
yet not one of your words would be heard without the presence of air in the ear
to empower its wondrous mechanism for hearing. As light is indispensable for
seeing
so in exactly the same way is the air necessary for hearing
and
without it the ear would be a perfectly useless organ
instead of being
as
now
a wonderful organ to minister to our joy and delight. And since without
the atmosphere we could not hear each other speak
it follows that all
commercial
educational
and social intercourse would be at an end
and the
earth would become one vast grave.
1. Let us learn from the air a lesson--and it is a most impressive
one--as to the inestimable value of our ¡§common mercies
¡¨ which we enjoy every
moment
without a thought and without an emotion of gratitude to the great
Giver of them.
2. Let us learn from the atmosphere a lesson as to how to overcome
our difficulties. The dove in the fable was irritated because the wind ruffled
its feathers and opposed its flight. It foolishly desired to have a firmament
free from air
through the empty spaces of which it vainly thought it could fly
with the speed of lightning. Silly bird! It did not know that without the air
it could not fly at all
nor even live. And just so it is with the difficulties
we encounter. Without them and without conquering them
a high Christian
manhood or character is unattainable.
3. Let us learn from the atmosphere a lesson of thankfulness. It is
amongst the chief of our daily blessings
and is the immediate and continuous
gift of God
to whom our praises are continually due.
4. Let us learn from the atmosphere to make the best use possible of
the life it nourishes and preserves. As in itself the air is sweet
wholesome
and life-giving
let us be taught by it to live pure and noble lives which
shall yield for others wholesome and helpful and not poisonous and corrupt
influences. Our example makes a moral atmosphere for others to breathe
which
is wholesome or noxious
according as the example is good or bad. (G.
C.Noyes
D. D.)
The atmosphere
The atmosphere
like an ocean
overlies the whole surface of the
earth; in fact
it is an ocean; and it is literally true
that
like crabs and
lobsters
we live and move and spend our days at the bottom of a sea--an aerial
sea. This atmospheric ocean rises far above us
and
like that of waters
has
its waves
its currents
and its tides. It is found to grow more rarified
as
well as colder
as we ascend towards its upper limit
which is supposed to be
about forty-five miles above the level of the sea. Barometrical observations
however
show that on ascending to the height of three and a half miles (nearly
that of Cotopaxi)
we leave behind us
by weight
more than one-half the whole
mass of the atmosphere. And from the experience of aeronauts
it is believed
that there is no such air as man can breathe at an elevation of eight miles;
probably death would be the certain consequence of exceeding seven
though
some
of late
at great risk and suffering
have ascended to nearly that
height. On the summit of Mont Blanc
which is a trifle under three miles
the
sensations of those who make the ascent are very painful
owing to the levity
of the air; the flesh puffs out
the head is oppressed
the respiration is
difficult
and the face becomes livid; whilst the temperature is cold almost
past endurance. This ocean of air
like that of water
has also its weight and
pressure. People
in general
are not aware
because they are not conscious
of
any weight resting upon them from the atmosphere; yet reliable experiments
prove that at the sea level it presses with a force equal to fourteen and
three-fifths pounds on every square inch
or 2
100 pounds on every square foot
or 58
611
548
160 pounds on every square mile; or on the whole surface of the
earth with a weight equal to that of a solid globe of lead sixty miles in
diameter! How few reflect that they live under an ocean of such stupendous
weight! But to bring this fact more sensibly before the mind
we may state that
the atmospheric pressure on the whole surface of a medium sized man is no less
than fourteen tons--a weight that would instantly crash him
as hollow vessels
collapse when sunk deep in the ocean
but for the elasticity and equal pressure
of the air on every part without
and the counterbalancing pressure and
elasticity of the air within. The air encompassing the earth is a compound
substance
made up of two gases
mixed in the proportion of twenty-one parts of
oxygen to seventy-nine parts of nitrogen
by measure; mixed with these is a
small proportion of carbonic acid gas
which does not exceed one two-thousandth
part of the whole volume of the atmosphere. Whether the air is taken from the
greatest depths
or the most exalted heights which man has ever reached
this
proportion of the oxygen and nitrogen gases is maintained invariably.
Considering the vast and varied exhalations that constantly ascend from sea and
land
together with the incessant agitation of winds and tempests
this stands
before us a most astonishing fact
indeed! But it is not more wonderful than it
is important. No possible change could be made in the composition of the air
without rendering it injurious both to animal and vegetable life. If the
quantity of nitrogen were but a little increased
all the vital functions of
man would be performed with difficulty
pain
and slowness
and the pendulum of
life would soon come to a stand. If
on the other hand
the proportion of
oxygen were increased
all the processes of life would be quickened into those
of a fever
and the animal fabric would soon be destroyed
as it were
by its
own fires. (H. W. Morris
D. D.)
Reflections
1. On the mass of the atmosphere. Vast an appendage as this is to
our globe
its dimensions and density have been adapted with the utmost
exactness to the constitution of all organized existences. Any material change
in its mass would require a corresponding change in the structure of both
plants and animals
and
indeed
in the whole economy of the world. If its mass
were considerably reduced
all the difficulties experienced by travellers on
the summits of lofty mountains
and by aeronauts at great elevations above the
earth
would ensue; on the other hand
if much increased
opposite and equally
disastrous results would follow. If the atmosphere had been twice or three
times its present mass
currents of air would move with double or triple their
present force. With such a change nothing on sea or land could stand against a
storm. But how happily do we find all things balanced as now constituted. And
how obvious
that
ere ever God had breathed forth the fluid air
in His
all-comprehending Mind
its mass was measured and weighed
and the strength and
wants of all living creatures duly estimated before one of them had been called
into being. All the works of God have been done according to a determinate
counsel and infallible foreknowledge.
2. On the pressure of the atmosphere. Contemplating the enormous
weight of the air
resting upon all things and all persons
who but must
devoutly admire both the wisdom and the goodness of the Creator
in so
adjusting all the properties of the firmament
that under it we can breathe and
walk and act with ease
unconscious of weight or oppression
while in fact we
are every moment under a load
which
when reduced to figures
surpasses both
our comprehension and belief.
3. On the composition of the atmosphere. How very wonderful is this!
When we reflect upon the proportions and combinations of its constituent
elements
we cannot but look up with adoring reverence to its Divine Author.
What wisdom
what power
what benevolence
have been exercised in arranging the
chemical constitution and agencies of this world
to adapt them unfailingly to
the strength and wants of animals and of plants
even the most delicate and
minute! How very slightly the atmosphere of life differs from one that would
produce instant and universal death How trifling the change the Almighty had
need make in the air we hourly breathe
to lay all the wicked and rebellious
sons of men lifeless and silent in the dust! (H. W. Morris
D. D.)
A type of prayer and its answer
In the natural world
the sun pours down its light and heat
and
diffuses his genial influences over all; yet warming and animating
in a
special degree
those fields and hillsides turned more directly towards him
and drawing upward from them a proportionally greater amount of vapour; this
vapour
as we have seen
in due time
returns in showers
refreshing and
beautifying all nature. So in the world of Christian devotion. Under the
benignant beams of the Sun of Righteousness
the exhalations of prayer and
praise are drawn upwards to the heavenly throne
more abundantly
as in nature
from those more completely under His gracious influences; and these exhalations
of the heart
through a Saviour¡¦s mediation
are made to return in richer
showers
even showers of grace
to refresh and strengthen those souls to bring
forth fruit unto everlasting life. Again: As the earth
without showers
would
soon become parched and barren and dead; so
without the rain and dew of Divine
grace
the moral earth would become as iron
and its heavens as brass; every
plant of holiness
every flower of piety
and every blade of virtue
would soon
droop and die. Nor does the parallel end here: as in the physical world
the
greater the quantity of vapours drawn up from sea and land
the greater will be
the amount of rain that sooner or later will come down on plain and mountain;
so in the spiritual
the more abundant the exhalations of prayer and supplication
from the children of men
the more copious the showers of grace that will be
poured out in return. Let prayer
therefore
daily ascend as the vapours from
the ends of the earth
and rise as clouds of incense before the throne
and
this wilderness shall yet blossom as the rose
flourish as the garden of the
Lord
and bloom with all the beauties of an unblighted paradise. (H. W.
Morris
D. D.)
Atmospherical adjustments
The atmosphere constitutes a machinery which
in all its
complicated and admirable adjustments
offers the most striking displays and
convincing proofs of this. This vast and wonderful appendage of our globe has
been made expressly to meet the nature and wants of the living creatures and
growing vegetation that occupy its surface; and all these plants and animals
have been created with distinct reference to the properties of the atmosphere.
Throughout design and mutual adaptation are most manifest. The atmosphere has
been composed of those elements
and composed of them in just the proportions
that are essential to the health and nurture of all living creatures. The
atmosphere has been made for lungs; and lungs have been made for the
atmosphere
being elaborately constructed for its alternate admission and
expulsion. And how beautiful that adjustment by which animals breathe of the
oxygen of the air
and set carbonic acid free for the use of plants
while
plants absorb carbonic acid
and set oxygen free for the benefit of animals!
The atmosphere and the ear have also been formed one for the other. This organ
is so constructed that its use depends entirely upon the elastic properties of
the air. In like manner the atmosphere and the organs of speech have been
formed in mutual adaptation. The whole mouth
the larynx
the tongue
the lips
have been made with inimitable skill to form air into words. Equally evident is
the mutual adaptation of the atmosphere and the organs of smell
as the latter
can effect their function only in connection with the former. In one word
all
the parts of all animal organizations
even to the very pores of the skin
have
been contrived with minute nicety in adaptation to the constituent elements and
elastic properties of the atmosphere. Add to all the foregoing
its admirable
qualities for disseminating h
at evaporating moisture
equalizing climate
producing winds
forming clouds
and diffusing light--and we behold in the
Firmament of heaven a concourse of vast contrivances
that constitute a sublime
anthem to the Creator¡¦s praise! The various elements composing the atmosphere
its gases
and vapours
and electricity
are
indeed
as if instinct with life
and reason. Animated by the solar beams
they are everywhere in busy and
unerring activity
--sometimes acting singly
sometimes in combination
but
always playing into each other¡¦s hands with a certainty and perfection which
might almost be called intelligence
and which nothing short of Infinite Wisdom
could have devised. Thus
by their manifold and beneficial operations
¡§the
heavens declare the glory of God
and the firmament showeth His handiwork.¡¨ (H.
W. Morris
D. D.)
The firmament
The use of it was to ¡§divide the waters from the waters¡¨: that is
the waters on the earth from the waters in the clouds
which are well known to
be supported by the buoyant atmosphere. The ¡§division¡¨ here spoken of is that
of distribution. God having made the substance of all things
goes on to
distribute them. By means of this the earth is watered by the rain of heaven
without which it would be unfruitful
and all its inhabitants perish. God makes
nothing in vain. There is a grandeur in the firmament to the eye; but this is
not all: usefulness is combined with beauty. Nor is it useful only with respect
to animal subsistence: it is a mirror
conspicuous to all
displaying the glory
of its Creator
and showing His handiworks. The clouds also
by emptying
themselves upon the earth
set us an example of generosity; and reprove those
who
full of this world¡¦s good
yet keep it principally to themselves. (A.
Fuller.)
The second day
The second day¡¦s work is the forming of an expanse or heaven in
the creature
by which the hitherto unbounded waters are divided from the
waters. God then names the expanse. At this stage the state of the creature
that it is drowned in waters
begins to be perceived. Such is the second state
or stage in the new creation. In the midst of the waters a heaven is formed in
the once benighted creature. That unstable element
so quickly moved by storms
is the well-known type of the restless desires of the heart of fallen man; for
¡§the wicked are like the troubled sea
which cannot rest
whose waters cast up
mire and dirt.¡¨ Before regeneration
unquiet lusts everywhere prevail: the
whole man or creature is drowned and buried in them. In the progress of the new
creation
these waters are not at once removed: indeed
they are never wholly
removed till that other creation comes
when there is ¡§no more sea.¡¨ They are
first divided by a heaven; then bounded on the third day
when the dry land
rises up out of them. This heaven represents the understanding opened
as the
rising earth upon the third day shows us the will liberated. For till now
¡§the
understanding has been darkened¡¨; nay
it is written of the natural man that he
has ¡§no understanding.¡¨ But now the heaven is stretched. Christ ¡§opens the
understanding¡¨ of those who before this had been His disciples. And thus
another precious gift
once hid with Christ in God
now by Christ is wrought in
us also. A heaven is formed within the creature; a heaven into which darkness may
return
and through which clouds shall pour as well as bright sunshine; a
heaven which for sin may be shut up and become like brass
but which was made
to be the home and treasure house of sweet and dewy showers; a heaven like
Israel¡¦s path through the sea of old
sorely threatened by dark and thick
waters
but
like that same path
a step to resurrection power
and worthy to
be called ¡§heaven
¡¨ even by God Himself; influencing the earth in untold ways
here attracting
there repelling; the great means after light of arranging and
disposing all things. (A. Jukes.)
The gathering together of the waters called He seas
The sea and the dry land
I.
THE
SEA. ¡§Let the waters . . . unto one place.¡¨
1. The method of their location. Perhaps by volcanic agency.
2. The degree of their proportion. If the sea were smaller
the
earth would cease to be verdant and fruitful
as there would not be sufficient
water to supply our rivers and streams
or to distil upon the fields. If the
sea was larger
the earth would become a vast uninhabitable marsh
from the
over abundance of rain. Hence
we see how needful it is that there should be a
due proportion between the sea and dry land
and the wisdom and goodness of the
Creator
in that it is established so exactly and beneficently.
3. The extent of their utility. They not only give fertility to the
earth
but they answer a thousand social and commercial purposes.
II. THE DRY LAND.
1. The dry land was made to appear. The land had been created
before
but it was covered with a vast expanse of water. Even when things are
created
when they merely exist
the Divine call must educate them into the
full exercise of their utility
and into the complete manifestation of their
beauty. So it can remove the tide of passion from the soul
and make all that
is good in human nature to appear.
2. It was made to be verdant. ¡§And let the earth bring forth grass.¡¨
The plants now created are divided into three classes: grass
herb
and tree.
In the first
the seed is not noticed
as not obvious to the eye. In the
second
the seed is the striking characteristic. In the third
the fruit. This
division is simple and natural.
3. It was made to be fruitful. ¡§And the fruit tree yielding fruit.¡¨
The earth is not merely verdant and beautiful to look at
but it is also
fruitful and good for the supply of human want. Nature appears friendly to man
that she may gain his confidence
invite his study
and minister to the removal
of his poverty.
III. AND IT WAS
GOOD.
1. For the life and health of man.
2. For the beauty of the universe.
3. For the commerce and produce of the nations. (J. S. Exell
M.
A.)
Various uses of the sea
1. Water is as indispensable
to all life
whether vegetable or animal
as is the air itself. But this
element of water is supplied entirely by the sea. All the waters that are in
the rivers
the lakes
the fountains
the vapours
the dew
the rain
the snow
come alike out of the ocean. It is a common impression that it is the flow of
the rivers that fills the sea. It is a mistake. It is the flow of the sea that
fills the rivers.
2. A second use of the sea is to moderate the temperature of the
world. A common method of warming houses in the winter is by the use of hot
water. The water
being heated in the basement
is carried by iron pipes to the
remotest parts of the building
where
parting with its warmth and becoming
cooler and heavier
it flows back again to the boiler
to be heated anew
and
so to pass round in the same circuit continuously. The advantage of this method
is
that the heat can be carried to great distances
and in any direction.
3. A third important use of the sea is to be a perpetual source of
health to the world. Without it there could be no drainage for the lands. The
process of death and decay
which is continually going on in the animal and
vegetable kingdoms
would soon make the whole surface of the earth one vast
receptacle of corruption
whose stagnant mass would breathe a pestilence
sweeping away all the life of a continent. The winds would not purify it; for
having no place to deposit the burden
it would only accumulate in their hands
and filling their breath with its poisonous effluvia
it would make them swift
ministers of death
carrying the sword of destruction into every part of the
world at once.
4. It may be mentioned
as a fourth office of the sea
that it is
set to furnish the great natural pathways of the world. Instead of a barrier
the sea is a road across the barrier. Hence the ocean has been the great
educator of the world. The course of empire began on its shores
and has always
kept within sight of its waters. No great nation has ever sprung up except on
the seaside
or by the banks of those great navigable rivers which are
themselves but an extension of the sea. Had it not been for the Mediterranean
the history of Egypt
of Phoenicia
of Greece and Rome and Carthage
would have
been impossible.
5. A fifth office of the sea is to furnish an inexhaustible
storehouse of power for the world. Of the three great departments of labour
which occupy the material industry of the race
--agriculture
commerce
and
manufactures
--we have seen how the first depends upon the ocean
the one for
the rains which support all vegetable life
the other for the thousand paths on
which its fleets are travelling. We now find that the third one also
though at
first appearing not to have very intimate connection with the ocean
does in
fact owe to it almost the whole of its efficiency. Ninety-nine hundredths of
all the mechanical power now at work in the world is furnished by the water
wheel and the steam engine.
6. A sixth office of the sea is to be a vast storehouse of life. The
sea has a whole world of life in itself. It is said that the life in the sea
far exceeds all that is out of it. There are more than twenty-five thousand
distinct species of living beings that inhabit its waters. Incredible numbers
of them are taken from the sea; in Norway
four hundred millions of a single
species in a single season; in Sweden
seven hundred millions; and by other
nations
numbers without number.
7. Omnipresent and everywhere is this need and blessing of the sea.
It is felt as truly in the centre of the continent
where
it may be
the rude
inhabitant never beard of the ocean
as it is on the circumference of the
wave-beaten shore. He is surrounded
every moment
by the presence and bounty
of the sea. It is the sea that looks out upon him from every violet in his
garden bed; from the broad forehead of his cattle
and the rosy faces of his
children; and from the cool-dropping well at his door. It is the sea that feeds
him. It is the sea that clothes him
It is the sea that cools him with the
summer cloud
and that warms him with the blazing fires in winter.
8. There is a sea within us which responds to the sea without. Deep
calleth unto deep
and it is the answer and the yearning of these inward waves
in reply to that outward call
which makes our hearts to swell
our eyes to
grow dim with tears
and our whole being to lift and vibrate with such strong
emotion when we stand upon the shore and look out upon the deep
or sit in the
stern of some noble ship and feel ourselves cradled on the pulsations of its
mighty bosom. There is a life within us which calls to that sea without--a
conscious destiny which only its magnitude and its motion can symbolize and
utter. (Bib. Sacra.)
Genesis of the lands
I. EXPLANATION OF
THE PASSAGE.
1. Panorama of emergent lands. A sublime spectacle it is--this
resurrection of the terrestrial forms out of ocean¡¦s baptismal sepulchre--this
emergence of island
and continent
and mountain--this heaving into sight of
Britain and Madagascar and Cuba and Greenland
of Asia and Africa and Australia
and America
of Alps and Himalayas and Andes and Sierra Nevada; more thrilling
still
of Ararat and Sinai and Pisgah and Carmel and Lebanon and Zion and
Olivet.
2. Geologic confirmation. How could the geologist make out his
magnificent geological calendar
if it were not for the successive layers of
deposited or stratified rocks of the lands upheaved into view from the depths
of old ocean¡¦s sepulchre? And so
at this very point
the ancient seer and the
modern sceptic agree; both say that the earth was formed out of water and by
means of water (2 Peter 3:5). But they differ as to
the explanation. The ancient seer said
¡§The secret of Nature is God.¡¨ The
modern sceptic says
¡§The secret of Nature is Law.¡¨ And yet both speak truly
for Truth is evermore unutterably large: God is the cause of Nature
and Law is
God¡¦s means.
3. Beneficence of the arrangement. ¡§God saw that it was good.¡¨ And
well might He delight in it. For a blessed thing this Divine distribution of
lands and seas was.
II. MORAL MEANING
OF THE STORY.
1. The birth of individuality.
2. The birth of duty. Each man is in himself a little world. The
individualization of each man is not so much for the man¡¦s own sake as for the
sake of all men. This
then
is the stirring thought of the hour:
Individualization for the sake of mankind. Go forth then
brother
inspired
with the majestic thought that you are a personal unit--a man among
men--individualized from the mass of humanity for the sake of humanity
andhumanity¡¦s King. Yes
happy the day
let me again say it
when God says to
thee: ¡§Let the waters gather themselves to one place
and let the dry land
appear.¡¨ Thrice happy the day when thou obeyest
looking upward to the opening
heavens and outward to the broadening horizon. (G. D.Boardman.)
The third day
Up to this point the unquiet element
which is naturally uppermost
in the creature
has prevailed everywhere. Light has come
and shown the waste;
a heaven is formed within it; but nothing fixed or firm has yet appeared. Just
as in the saint there is first light
and a heaven too within
while as yet he
is all instability
with nothing firm or settled. But now the firm earth rises.
The state desired by Paul
--¡§that we be no more tossed to and fro with every
wind of doctrine
but may grow up in all things into Him who is the Head
even
Christ
¡¨--here begins to be accomplished. Now the will
long buried and
overwhelmed with tossing lusts
rises above them to become very fruitful; and
the soul
once lost in passions
emerges from the deep
like ¡§the earth which
He hath founded forever.¡¨ There is yet more for us to mark in this emerging
earth. Not only does it escape the floods: it comes up also into the expanse of
heaven. That creature
so long buried
now mounts up to meet the skies
as
though aspiring to touch and become a part of heaven; while on its swelling
bosom rest the sweet waters
the clouds
which embrace and kiss the hills. When
the man by resurrection is freed from restless lusts; when he comes up from
under the dominion of passions into a state of rest and peace; not only is he
delivered from a load
but he also meets a purer world
an atmosphere of clear
and high blessing; where even his hard rocks may be furrowed into channels for
the rain; heaven almost touching earth
and earth heaven
Not without awful
convulsions can such a change be wrought. The earth must heave before the
waters are gathered into one place. (See Psalms 104:7-8.) Many a soul shows
rents and chasms like the steep mountains. Nevertheless
¡§the mountains bring
peace
and the little hills righteousness.¡¨ And this is effected on the third
or resurrection day; for in creation
as elsewhere
the ¡§third day¡¨ always
speaks of resurrection. Then the earth brings forth fruit. Fruitfulness
hitherto delayed
at once follows the bounding of the waters. For
¡§being made
free from sin
we have fruit unto righteousness
and the end everlasting life.¡¨
The order of the produce is instructive; first the grass
then the herb
then
the fruit tree yielding fruit after his kind: as ever
the blade before the
ear
the small before the great
from imperfection onwards to perfection. The
first thing borne is ¡§grass
¡¨ the common emblem of the flesh. Is it asked how
the risen creature can bring forth fruits
which are
like the goodliness of
the grass
of the flesh and carnal? Because for long the regenerate man is yet
¡§carnal
¡¨ and his fruits are in the flesh
though with sincere desires for
God¡¦s glory. The development of Adam
as exhibited in the Word
not to say
experience
gives proofs on proofs of this. The Corinthians
too
were
¡§carnal
¡¨ though with many spiritual gifts. But after ¡§grass¡¨ comes ¡§herb and tree
¡¨
with ¡§seed and fruit¡¨; some to feed the hungry
some to cure the serpent¡¦s
bite; some hid in a veil of leaves
or bound in shapeless husks; some exposing
their treasures
as the lovely vine and olive; the one to cheer man¡¦s heart
the other to give the oil to sustain the light for God¡¦s candlestick. Such is
the faithful soul
with many-coloured fruits
¡§as the smell of a field which
the Lord blesses.¡¨ The form of the fruit may vary; its increase may be less or
more--some thirty
some sixty
some an hundredfold; for ¡§the fruit of the
Spirit may be love
or peace
or faith
or truth
or gentleness¡¨: but all to
the praise of His grace
who bringeth forth fruit out of the earth
¡§fruits of
righteousness
which are by Jesus Christ.¡¨ Nor let us forget
--¡§whose seed is
in itself
after his kind.¡¨ God¡¦s fruits all multiply themselves: this is their
constitution. (A. Jukes.)
Distribution of sea and land
By means of this distribution the waters are ever in motion
which
preserves them and almost everything else from stagnancy and putrefaction. That
which the circulation of the blood is to the animal frame
that the waters are
to the world: were they to stop
all would stagnate and die. See how careful
our heavenly Father was to build us a habitation before He gave us a being. Nor
is this the only instance of the kind: our Redeemer has acted on the same
principle
in going before us to prepare a place for us. (A. Fuller.)
Let the earth bring forth grass
Vegetation
I.
THAT
IT IS THE RESULT OF A COMBINED INSTRUMENTALITY.
1. There was the Divine agency. It was the power of God that gave
seed and life to the earth. For it is very certain that the earth could not
have produced grass
and herb
and tree of itself.
2. There was the instrumentality of the earth. ¡§And God said
Let
the earth bring forth grass
¡¨ etc. So when called by God the most barren
instrumentalities become life-giving and verdant. When the Divine Being is
about to enrich men
He gives them the power to help themselves.
II. IT IS GERMINAL
IN THE CONDITION OF ITS GROWTH. ¡§Seed.¡¨ Fertility never comes all at once. God
does not give man blade of grass or tree in full growth
but the seeds from
which they are to spring. Germs are a Divine gift. God does not give man a
great enterprise
but the first hint of it. The cultivation of germs is the
grandest employment in which men can be engaged.
III. IT IS FRUITFUL
IN THE PURPOSE OF ITS LIFE. ¡§Yielding fruit.¡¨
1. Life must not always remain germinal. The seed must not alway
remain seed. It must expand
develop. The world is full of men who have great
thoughts and enterprises in the germ
but they never come to perfection.
The fruit must be--
1. Abundant.
2. Rich.
3. Beautiful.
4. Refreshing.
IV. IT IS
DISTINCTIVE IN ITS SPECIES AND DEVELOPMENT. ¡§Fruit after his kind.¡¨ The growth
will always be of the same kind as the seed. There may be variation in the
direction and expression of the germinal life
but its original species is
unchanged. This is true in the garden of the soul. Every seed produces fruit
after its kind. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
The grass
1. Consider the grass for
(a) its humility;
(b) its cheerfulness;
(c) as an emblem of human life.
2. Consider it
particularly
in the places where your dead are
lying. What Golgoth as would be our cemeteries did not the grass grow there
more green and more abundant
if possible
than almost anywhere beside! (Homiletic
Review.)
The beauty of the grass
What is there in it of beauty or of strength? Let Ruskin answer:
¡§A very little strength
and a very little tallness
and a few delicate long
lines meeting in a point--not a perfect point either
but blunt and unfinished
by no means a creditable or apparently much-cared-for example of Nature¡¦s
workmanship; made
as it seems
only to be trodden on today
and tomorrow to be
cast into the oven; and a little pale and hollow stalk
feeble and flaccid
leading down to the dull brown fibres of its roots.¡¨ That is all. ¡§And yet
¡¨ he
adds
¡§think of it well
and judge whether of all the gorgeous flowers that
beam in summer air
and of all strong and goodly trees
pleasant to the eyes
and good for food--stately palm and pine
strong ash and oak
scented citron
burdened vine--there be any by man so deeply loved
by God so highly graced
as
that narrow point of feeble green.¡¨
Genesis of the plants
I. EXPLANATION OF
THE PASSAGE.
1. Panorama of the emerging plants. On all sides spring up
as
though by magic
the floating algae
the circling lichens
the luxuriant
mosses
the branching ferns
the waving grasses
the graceful palms
the kingly
cedars
the iris-hued flowers. And a blessed vision it is: this grateful
exchange of dull uniformity and barren nakedness for vegetable colours--for
carpets of emerald
and tapestries of white and azure and crimson and orange
and purple. Even the God of beauty Himself feels that it is good.
2. The birth of life.
3. The soil the matrix of the plant.
4. Fruit after its kind. Here the Sacred Chronicle virtually asserts
the invariability of what we call ¡§Species.¡¨
5. Ministry of vegetation.
II. MORAL MEANING
OF THE STORY.
1. The plant is a beautiful emblem
or
rather
a prophetic type of
man himself.
2. The birth of powers.
This then is the lesson of the hour: The birth of powers to issue
in heavenly fruitage. Be not content then with the mere sense of individuality
and of duty
mechanically taking your allotted place with the grouping lands
and Genesis 1:9-10); actually put forth in
living exercise your latent powers. Yes
happy the day when the Lord of seeds
and of souls says to thee: ¡§Let the earth put forth shoots
and the fruit tree
yield its fruits!¡¨ Thrice happy the day when thou obeyest
thy life becoming
arborescent
the leaves of thy tree spirally arranged so as to take in the most
thou canst of God¡¦s air and sunshine
yielding the fruits of a Christian
character. (G. D.Boardman.)
The vegetable creation
Notice the general parts and functions of trees and plants.
I. THE ROOTS. Two
important and special purposes.
1. To attach the plant or tree to the soil
and support it there in
its proper position.
2. To select and draw suitable juices from the soil
for nourishment.
II. THE LEAVES.
The principal organ of every plant. The seed in which the plant originates
when carefully examined
is found to be composed of a leaf rolled tightly
and
altered in tissue and contents
so as to suit its new requirements. The bud
also consists of leaves folded in a peculiar manner
and covered with hardened
scales to protect them from the winter cold. And the flowers
the glory of the
vegetable world
are merely leaves arranged so as to protect the vital organs
within them
and coloured so as to attract insects to scatter the fertilizing
pollen
and to reflect or absorb the light and heat of the sun for ripening the
seed. If we pursue our study of leaves still further
and contemplate their
chemical functions
we shall find each a marvel and a mystery in itself. Every
leaf is an individual
gifted with peculiar powers; its stomata and other
organs constitute a complete laboratory; it absorbs air
and exhales moisture;
it elects the carbon
and sends forth as useless the excess of oxygen
it
extracts from the sunbeam its chlorophyll
and with it adorns itself in the
charms of verdancy. In a word
it embodies in its thin and distended form one
of the most wonderful examples of organic chemistry. It is at once full of
science and full of poetry.
III. THE FLOWERS.
They are the most beautiful productions of the vegetable kingdom; and
as to
the delicacy of their forms
the beauty of their colouring
and the sweetness
of their odour
seem preeminently designed for the pleasure of man
for he
alone of all the living tenants of the earth is capable of appreciating them.
They also perform several important functions in connection with the
reproduction of the species. Flowers exhibit many powers and properties which
the science of man has never been able to explain. Some will instantly close
upon the slightest touch. Some will flutter as if in alarm
upon sudden
exposure to intense light. Some seem possessed of limited powers of locomotion;
a certain species of wild oats
when placed upon a table
will spontaneously
move; pea blossoms always turn their backs upon the wind; the heliotrope always
faces the sun; the tulip opens its petals when the weather is fine
but closes
them during rain and darkness. The pond lily closes its pure white leaves at
night
as it lies on its watery bed
but unfolds them again in the morning.
On the other hand
some flowers open only at night; that splendid
flower
the night-blooming cereus
is of this kind; it opens but once
and that
in the night
for a few hours only
then wilts and dies without ever admitting
the light of day into its bosom. Some open and shut at certain hours
and that
so regularly as to indicate the time of day
like the sindrimal of Hindostan
which opens at four in the evening and closes at four in the morning. Dr. Good
in his ¡§Book of Nature
¡¨ describes a water plant
valisneria spiralis
which
at a certain season
detaches itself from its stem
and
like a gallant suitor
sails complacently over the waters in pursuit of a mate
till he finds her.
Other flowers there are
as the nepenthes
that will adroitly catch flies and
devour them. Others again possess a most extraordinary luminous property; the
nasturtium
if plucked during sunshine
and carried into a dark room
will
there show itself by its own light; a plant that abounds in the jungles of
Madura illumines the ground to a distance all around; and many species of
lichens
creeping along the roofs of caverns
lend to them an air of
enchantment
by the soft and clear light they diffuse. Who can explain to us
these phenomena of flowers? Who but must see that the hand and counsel of
Infinite Wisdom are concerned in the production of these vegetable wonders! I
add but one fact more respecting flowers
and that is
the power which each
flower has to regulate for itself the heat of the sun.
IV. THE SEEDS.
1. Look at the admirable contrivance of the vessels
or capsules
in
which the various seeds are lodged and protected while they mature. These are
so many
so diverse
and often so complicated in their forms and materials
that it would seem as if they had been adopted only for the sake of
demonstrating the inexhaustible resources of the Divine invention. Some are
invested in close tunicles
some are surrounded with hard shells
some are elaborately
folded in leaves
some are deposited in rows within parchment pods
some are in
eases lined with softest velvet
some are wrapped in wool
some are held as in
blown bladders
some are placed between hard scales
some are defended by
pointed thorns
some are housed as beneath a roof
some are within slits made
in the edge of the ]eaves
some are buried in the heart of the fruit
and some
in various other manners.
2. The fecundity of plants
or their capacity for producing seeds
presents us with another remarkable fact. The common cereals often yield from
sixty to a hundred fold. One castor oil plant will produce 1
500
one sunflower
4
000
and one thistle 24
000 seeds in a single season.
3. Another interesting fact connected with seeds is the arrangement
made for their dispersion. Sometimes the pericarp
or vessel containing the
seed
opens elastically
as with a mechanical spring
and discharges the seeds
contained in its cavity to a considerable distance. Some seeds
as those of the
dandelion and thistle
are provided with a beautiful stellate down
which
serves as wings
and by means of which they often travel many miles. Other
seeds
as the burdock
are furnished with little hooks
by means of which they
cling to men and beasts as they pass by
and are thus scattered far and wide.
Birds
also
are important agents in this great work. Many of the heavier
seeds
such as acorns
are gathered and buried by mice
squirrels
etc.
of
which
while part are consumed
many are left in the ground to germinate.
Rains
and rivers
also
often carry seeds hundreds and even thousands of miles
from where they were produced; and the ocean not unfrequently bears them to the
shores of other continents
or wafts them upon the coral islands just risen
from its bosom
and thus soon covers them with vegetation.
4. The seed having been dispersed and dropped in the soil
the next
process to be noticed is its germination. To this certain conditions are
necessary. A certain degree of heat must be had; at a temperature below
freezing point
seed will not germinate
and if the temperature be up to
or
very near
the boiling point of water
it will not germinate
but die. The most
suitable temperature for each particular plant varies between these limits
according to the nature of the plant. Again
if seeds have the necessary warmth
and moisture
yet if exposed to bright light
they will not germinate; shade is
always
absolute darkness sometimes
necessary for the success of the
germinating process. If the seed enjoys all the required conditions of shade
water
air
and heat
it will grow and flourish. When a seed
a grain of wheat
say
is cast into the ground
from one end of it issues a plumule
or tender
sprout; from the other a number of fibrous threads; the plumule immediately
tends upward
and works for the air and light
and becomes a plant; the fibres
also at once struggle downwards
and become the roots. ¡§Now
what is a little
remarkable
¡¨ says Paley
¡§the parts issuing from the seed take their respective
directions
into whatever position the seed itself happens to be cast. If the
seed be thrown into the wrongest possible position
that is
if the ends in the
ground point the reverse of what they ought to do
everything
nevertheless
goes on right. The sprout
after being pushed out a little way
makes a bend
and turns upwards; the fibres
on the contrary
after shooting at first upward
turn down.¡¨ This fact is not more wonderful than it is important; for
how
unprofitable would be the labours of the husbandman
if only the grains that
happened to be right end up would prove productive
for scarce one seed out of
a hundred would be found in this position. Or
how endless would be his toil
if he had with care to place each particular seed in the ground with plumule end
up. But for the present wise and happy constitution of the seed
by which each
part proceeds in its right direction
and to fulfil its appointed office
where
would be our daily bread? How manifest both the wisdom and goodness of God in
this thing.
5. The longevity of seeds
or the power which they possess for
retaining the vital principle for lengthy periods of time
is another
remarkable fact to be noticed here. This is an important provision
as it
supplies a safeguard against the extinction of the species under unfavourable
circumstances
which may often occur. ¡§In the time of the Emperor Hadrian
a
man died soon after he had eaten plentifully of raspberries. He was buried at
Dorchester. About thirty years ago the remains of this man
together with coins
of the Roman Emperor
were discovered in a coffin at the bottom of a barrow
thirty feet under the surface. The man had thus lain undisturbed for some one
thousand seven hundred years. But the most curious circumstance connected with
the case was
that the raspberry seeds were recovered from the stomach
and
sown in the garden of the Horticultural Society
where they germinated and grew
into healthy bushes.¡¨ What a wondrous creation
then
have we in a grain of
seed! What a mystery is its life
that can thus well nigh immortalize its tiny
and delicate organism
preserving it uninjured and unchanged through the lapse
of hundreds and thousands of years!
V. THE EDIBLE AND
OTHER USEFUL PRODUCTIONS OF PLANTS is another subject that demands our grateful
consideration. He might have made all these of the same
or nearly the same
taste; but so far from this was His Divine generosity
that we have almost an
interminable variety of fragrance and flavour
of sweetness and acid
of
mellowness and pungency: and all so wonderfully suited to gratify our taste
to
stimulate our appetite
and to yield us every required and desirable nutriment
in health and in sickness. Then
too
plants not only feed
but clothe us. (H.
W. Morris
D. D.)
Reflections on the vegetable creation
In vegetation we have the productions of Divine chemistry! Out of
the same elements we here behold the utmost diversity of results. Ten thousand
species of herbs
plants
and trees
springing from the same soil
watered by
the same showers
surrounded by the same atmosphere
and warmed by the same
sun--yet how different in their qualities! Some are acid and some are
tasteless
some offering the richest nourishment and others the rankest poison
some are exhilarating and some stupefying
a few are as sweet as honey
and
many as bitter as the waters of Marsh
some secreting oil while others are
exuding gum
some sending forth odours that delight and some that sicken and
offend--yet all these are constituted of the same four or five primary
elements
the diversity arising simply from the different proportions in which
Infinite skill has combined them. And herein is chemistry which man
astonishing as his progress has been in this science
can neither imitate nor
approach. Man
indeed
can take a plant and separate these its elements
and
ascertain their exact proportions
but he can never recombine them so as to
restore the plant. This is God¡¦s prerogative. ¡§What a thought that was
when
God thought of a tree!¡¨ exclaimed a philosopher. Yes
a tree
a single tree
originating in an atom seed
deriving its vitality from heaven
drawing its
juices from the earth
feeding upon the air
eliciting its colouring from the
sunbeam
and elaborating its several parts by the mysterious power of its own
vitality--presents a concourse of contrivances and properties and functions
such as would never have entered the mind of man
or perhaps of any other
intelligence
had not God set it in living form before him. What conceptions
then
shall we form
and what sentiments entertain of that Mind
who
with
unerring foresight
contrived a thousand
yea a hundred thousand differing
trees and plants--differing in their size from the invisible lichen of the
naked rock to the expanded banian tree of India
which proffers beneath its shade
ample room for an army--differing in form from the creeping vine to the cedar
of Libanus--differing in their age and duration from the ephemeral ¡§flower of
the grass¡¨ to the mighty adonsonia
hoary with the mosses of more than twenty
centuries--differing in their juices from the nourishing grape to the pohon
upas in their deadly valleys--differing in their aspect from the serpent cactus
to the stately pine--differing in their habitations from the climbing lianas of
the Guinea forests to the confervae of the silent pool--differing in the
structure of their roots
in the form of their leaves
and in the texture of
their stems--differing in their flowers
and seeds
and fruits--differing in
the rapidity of their growth
and circulation
and decay--differing in their
qualities for absorbing and reflecting the heat of the sun--and differing in a
multitude of other particulars! In the vegetable kingdom we behold a diversity
all but endless. In their creation
then
what countless ends to be secured.
What an infinitude of influences
properties
and agencies to be determined.
And what an infinitude
too
of weights
and measures
and proportions to be
calculated. Yet in the Divine mind
as in a vast storehouse of glorious ideas
and designs
the plans of all were perfect and complete ere ever the omnipotent
word to clothe the earth with verdure had gone forth. In that plan nothing was
forgotten
nothing overlooked. No unforeseen difficulty arose
no part of the
Divine purpose failed
no tree or plant or blade of grass came short of its
designed perfection. (H. W. Morris
D. D.)
Lessons from leaves
flowers
and grass
We need not seek for rare or out-of-the-way productions to gather
lessons--every green thing that springs out of the ground is a preacher to us
if we would but listen to its voice. All the leaves of the forest join in one
general murmur to repeat in our ears the prophet¡¦s warning
¡§We all do fade as
a leaf.¡¨ And as we are so prone to thrust this truth out of mind
as comes on
every fading fall of the year
God spreads before us on plain and hillside a
great parable
in which our own decay and death are pictorially represented in
such a vivid and impressive manner
that he who runs may read
and he who reads
must reflect and profit. With the leaves join the beauteous flowers
like
whispering angels
to impress the same needful admonition upon the heart and
mind of man. ¡§As a flower of the field
so he flourisheth.¡¨ And each flower
along his path seems to look up and address him in language of its own
and say--
¡§Child
of the dust
like me you spring
A
bright but evanescent thing;
Like
me may be cut down today
And
cast a worthless weed away.¡¨
The grass also has its speech. It spreads itself before us like a
living allegory
in which we may see our image and our end. It says
¡§All flesh
is grass; in the morning it flourisheth and groweth up; in the evening it is
cut down and withered.¡¨ And when its beauties and benefits
and teachings all
can avail man no more
the green grass reverently spreads itself as a robe over
his slumbering form
and forsakes not even that upon which all others have
turned their back--his grave--remaining there
in each bright blade
a
perpetual type of a coming glorious resurrection! (H. W. Morris
D. D.)
The growth of plants
The creation of vegetables is placed by Moses subsequent to the
production of light and of the atmosphere; immediately after the waters had
receded from the land
and just before the creation and arrangement of the
solar system. This position of vegetables in the series of creation exactly
answers the demands of our present knowledge. Instead of requiring the suns
light to germinate
seeds and plants
in order to do so
must be sowed and
placed in darkness before they begin to vegetate (solar light is unfriendly to
first germination). A small heat and moisture first cause their living
principle to begin its operations
but they cannot flower and fruit until they
receive the solar beams; nor could they grow without light
air
and moisture.
A portion of oxygen air is essential to vegetation. Hence the previous
atmosphere
which contains in its composition that portion
was indispensable
as was also some water on the soil where they were to grow. This exact placing
of the vegetable formation and first germination is another test of the
authenticity of the Hebrew cosmogony
which random fiction could not have
stood. (S. Turner.)
The miracle of reproduction
This was not a mere transformation; it was a new creation
a
miracle
or rather sixty thousand miracles in one. A chemist can form rocks
and even precious stones
by combining silicium
lime
carbon
etc.; but could
any chemist form a tree
a blade of grass
a bit of moss
or the smallest
living plant? Look at the flowers
the trees
the seeds
the fruits
and all the
wonders of vegetable life! Oh
what a collection of miracles! but the miracle
of miracles is
that each has ¡§its seed in itself.¡¨ A watch
which is one of
the most admirable works of man
is very inferior in its workmanship even to
the smallest plant
which we can scarcely see without the help of a microscope;
but what would you think of a watch which could produce watches
which in their
turn could produce other watches
and so on from generation to generation
from
age to age? (Professor Gaussen.)
Plant life
Have you ever thought what life is? for it was then that life
appeared for the first time upon the earth. The air
the winds
and the
tempests have no life; the sea
the dry land
the mountains
the valleys
the
rocks
the volcanoes and their flowing lavas
have no life--a gas has no life.
But a tree and a plant have life
although they have not thought or feeling.
Consider how the plant is born and grows: it springs from its seed as the bird
springs from the egg; it pierces the soil; it grows up; it is fed by the juices
of the earth through the hundred mouths of its roots; it drinks through its
leaves the air and the dew of heaven; and it faithfully gives out in return its
delicious odours. We know that it even breathes--it inhales and exhales the air;
it sleeps in the night
and is revived to new beauty and vigour in the day. A
life-giving juice circulates through all its vessels
as the blood circulates
in our veins. Every year it gives birth to numerous children
which resemble
the mother plant
and live
and grow
and breathe
and bring forth other plants
in their turn. (Professor Gaussen.)
An inimitable work
Scientific men such as Sir James Hall and others
have succeeded
in imitating some of the natural rocks in their laboratories. By taking chalk
silicium
vegetable matter
and other things
and subjecting them to strong
heat and powerful pressure
they have been able to manufacture
in small
quantities
marble like that of our mountains
coal such as we burn in our
fires
crystallized silicates like the granites of the Alps
and even a few
small fragments of precious stones. But do you suppose that any chemist could
succeed in making a living plant
even a blade of grass
a sprig of hyssop
a
morsel of the humble moss that grows on the wall
a strawberry plant
a
blue-hell
or a field daisy? All the greatest triumphs of human art and skill
have been lately collected in the Exhibitions of London and Paris; but if all
the mechanics who made these
and all the learned men in the world were united
and if they were to work together for a thousand years
they could not form one
living grain of corn
one seed of a living poppy
one seed of any kind
containing within it
infolded in the germ
ten thousand plants of corn
or one
hundred thousand plants of poppies
proceeding from and succeeding each other
from this time till the end of the world. (Professor Gaussen.)
Seed
Have you ever considered how wonderful a thing the seed of a plant
is? It is the miracle of miracles. God said
Let there be plants ¡§yielding
seed¡¨; and it is further added
each one ¡§after his kind.¡¨ The great
naturalist
Cuvier
thought that the germs of all past
present
and future
generations of seeds were contained one within the other
as if packed in a
succession of boxes. Other learned men have explained this mystery in a
different way. Let them explain it as they will
the wonder remains the same
and we must still look upon the reproduction of the seed as a continual
miracle. Consider first
their number. A noted botanist counted sixty thousand
then eighty thousand
and he supposed it possible that the number might even
amount to one hundred thousand. Well
let me ask you
Have these one hundred
thousand kinds of plants ever failed to bear the right seed? Have they ever
deceived us? Has a seed of wheat ever yielded barley
or a seed of a poppy
grown up into a sunflower? Has a sycamore tree ever sprung from an acorn
or a
beech tree from a chestnut? A little bird may carry away the small seed of a
sycamore in its beak to feed its nestlings
and on the way may drop it on the
ground. The tiny seed may spring up and grow where it fell
unnoticed
and
sixty years after it may become a magnificent tree
under which the flocks of
the valleys and their shepherds may rest in the shade. Consider next the
wonderful power of life and resurrection bestowed on the seeds of plants
so
that they may be preserved from year to year
and even from century to century.
Some years ago a vase hermetically sealed was found in a mummy pit in Egypt
by
the English traveller Wilkinson
who sent it to the British Museum. The
librarian there having unfortunately broken it
discovered in it a few grains
of wheat and one or two peas
old
wrinkled
and as hard as stone. The peas
were planted carefully under glass on the 4th of June 1844
and at the end of
thirty days these old seeds were seen to spring up into new life. They had been
buried probably about three thousand years ago
perhaps in the time of Moses
and had slept all that long time
apparently dead
yet still living in the dust
of the tomb. Lastly
consider the almost incredible fruitfulness of these
marvellous seeds. I have heard it said that a very well-known traveller
who
returned from America to Europe between two and three hundred years ago
having
admired in the New World this beautiful tree
then unknown in Europe
had put
two or three chestnuts in the pocket of his coat. After his arrival in Paris
having put on the same coat again
he found a single chestnut still remaining
in the pocket
and he took a fancy to plant it in the court of his house. The
following spring a young chestnut tree appeared
which grew and flourished
and
became the parent
not only of all the chestnuts in France
but of all the
magnificent trees of this kind under which the people of France
Germany
and
Italy assemble on their days of festival. These all sprang from the solitary
chestnut brought from America in that traveller¡¦s pocket. But what do you think
of the wonderful reproducing power of seeds
when I tell you that from a single
poppy seed
not larger than a grain of gunpowder
there may spring in four
years
poppies enough to cover all the habitable earth
that is to say
one-fourth of the surface of the globe
or about fifty million square miles? If
each seed should produce as much as Ray calculates
I have reckoned it would
amount in four years to a million of millions of millions of seed; which may be
estimated at 660
000 bushels (or 82
500 quarters)
and would be more than
enough to cover the five continents of the earth. All this immense multitude of
seeds might spring in so short a time from a single little seed
not nearly so
large as a grain of oats. Now
let us try to calculate the productive power of
a grain of corn. All historians tell us that in old times the harvests in Egypt
and Syria returned a hundredfold for one
and in Babylonia two hundred fold for
one. Well
suppose that I were to sow my grain in a soil as fertile as that of
Egypt is said to have been in old times
my first harvest would be 100 grains;
these 100 grains would produce 100 times as much for my second harvest
or
10
000 grains; my third harvest would be 100 times 10
000
or 1
000
000 grains;
and my fourth
100
000
000 grains. It has been reckoned that there are about
820
000 grains in a bushel. At this rate
my fourth harvest would yield about
122 bushels of grain; and four years after
it would be 100
000
000 as much
or
12
200
000
000 bushels
or 1
525
000
000 quarters. This is scarcely one-sixth
less than twice the 900
000
000 quarters which we reckoned would be necessary
to supply the whole human race for a year. Thus in eight years as much corn
might spring from one seed as to supply all mankind with bread for more than a
year and a half. Remark
also
my friends
that God has not given the
reproductive power of plants to their seeds alone. The life of vegetables
exists in many parts of them separately
and each of these parts alone
separated from all the others
can reproduce the whole plant. (Professor
Gaussen.)
The first vegetable
We come now to the consideration of the highest form of pure
matter
unconnected with an immaterial principle; viz.
that which is invested
with organic power. Before the creation of the vegetable
the state of matter
had been inorganic; but at the commandment of God
a portion of it became
invested with altogether new properties and new powers. It assumed
at once
and in obedience to the will of Him that spake
that extraordinary form of
existence
which we call organized structure: and became
in that change
subject to new forces
regulated by new laws. The great difference which
strikes us at once
as existing between an inorganic and organic structure is
that in the former
each particle acts as it were separately
and for itself;
and in the latter
each particle acts as a part of a whole
for a certain end
to be brought about in the whole structure; but then this effect is the
beautiful resultant of certain fixed though unknown laws of combination.
Professor Faraday has divided the powers of matter into two great
classes--instant and waiting. Gravitation
for instance
he calls instant
because its action is unceasing
under all circumstances. Electricity
on the
other hand
he calls waiting
because it is only called forth under certain
circumstances
and
so to speak
waits for them.
1. Organic powers are eminently waiting forces; they are manifested
under certain circumstances
and so we find that a seed will remain for
thousands of years without germinating
if deprived of the influences of heat
and light.
2. Again: These powers seem to be communicable. As the particles of
the inorganic world are drawn into the organic fabric
they become themselves
organic; they receive a communication of power
and act as invested with it
until they are again thrown off.
3. These powers seem also to be exhaustible. I feel the extent of
the difficulty that lies in this admission
and yet I must acknowledge that
there does appear to be a kind of exhaustion of power in an organized
structure. We find that in a certain time
these powers cease to act
and the
plant
according to common language
dies. This is the stronghold of those who
believe the functions of the vegetable arise from
and are governed by
an
immaterial principle. For
they say
upon the removal of this principle
the
whole material frame becomes powerless
and the plant dies. The great answer to
this is
that the whole organic fabric does not always lose its power
or as it
is called die
at once
but very often
both in the plant and in the animal
one portion of it ceases to manifest organic power before the rest; and this
fact overthrows the whole argument. I feel strongly inclined to believe that
after all
there is no real exhaustion of organic power
any more than there is
of physical power
but that when
in the appointed time
the whole fabric of
the plant (or animal) goes to decay
these powers lie dormant in the particles
of matter
till
in the wondrous revolution of the wheel of natural providence
they became incorporated with organic structure again
and put forth their
manifested actions. In fact
that organic powers are powers of circumstance and
not of essence; they are always present in matter
but always waiting. They
are
what an ancient writer called so long ago
¡§moveable powers¡¨; and they are
governed
ruled
and regulated by Him who first said
¡§Let the earth bring
forth grass
¡¨ etc. Let us now consider especially the words
¡§Whose seed is in
itself.¡¨ Of all the manifestations of power
there is none so wonderful as that
of reproduction. Even when we come to the consideration of the material portion
of the complex nature of the animal
although we shall find other forms of
power
such as contractibility
as in the case of muscle; vibration
as in the
case of the fibres of the brain
receiving the impressions of light and sound;
yet shall we discover none more extraordinary than this of reproduction. And
yet
strange and striking as this power is
when we reflect upon it
it is not
perhaps more so than certain physical powers. It is almost as wonderful that
matter should attract matter
as that matter should produce matter; for both
actions are alike dependent on the Creator¡¦s will. Strictly and philosophically
speaking
there is no further creation of matter in the case
but a gathering
in of surrounding matter
to form the germ of the future plant. We know that
the most complex structure of any plant or animal (man included) is but the
elaboration of the simple cell: this cell draws from the world around the
materials which compose other cells
and these new cells develop themselves
into the different parts which compose their future fabric
root
leaves
buds
etc.; perhaps according to their different reception of the influences of heat
light
and electricity: but this is all wrapt in mystery. There is a limit to
all the investigations of man
a point beyond which he cannot go; when
like
one of old
he ¡§looks up unto the heavens
and bewails his ignorance;¡¨ but the
Christian
amidst all these wonders
has a sure resting place whereon to stand
for he knows by whom all these things consist. ¡§He upholdeth all things by the
word of His power
¡¨ is the true solution to all our difficulties; and if we
rested on this there would not be that unquietness which we so often feel in
the pursuit of natural science. We are too apt to speak as if we thought that
God having created the universe left it to itself. He is the governor of the
material world
as He is of the spiritual world. God said
¡§Let the earth bring
forth grass
the herb yielding seed
and the fruit tree yielding fruit
¡¨ etc.;
¡§and it was so.¡¨ (The Protoplast.)
All nature is emblematic
When the Incarnate Jehovah preached upon this earth that He had
made
He took the whole of creation as His text. The waving corn in the fields
through which He walked with His disciples
the wild flowers
the trees which
overshadowed Him
all served as symbols of heavenly things. ¡§Consider
¡¨ He
said
¡§the lilies of the field.¡¨ While we walk in a world where beauty still
lingers
for it is ¡§though spoiled by sin
in ruin fair
¡¨ we may read a lesson
in every leaf
and bud
and blossom. If we are anxious and distrustful as to
God¡¦s provision of our wants in this life
even the very herb of the field
rebukes us
for God has clothed it; the wild flowers raise their heads
bright
with His workmanship
and they speak to us
saying
¡§Hath God so decked us
and
shall He not rather clothe you
O ye of little faith?¡¨ And then how many
lessons do we learn from the sowing of the seed. Christ said
¡§Hear ye the parable
of the sower.¡¨ Have we heard it? Again
Christ said in another parable
¡§So is
the kingdom of God
as if a man should cast seed into the ground
and should
sleep
and rise night and day
and the seed should spring and grow up
he
knoweth not how.¡¨ It is just so with the servant of God
scattering the seed in
preaching the word of life; it springs up
he knows not how; he obeys the
command of God. Another lesson Christ drew from natural vegetation was given in
these words: ¡§The kingdom of heaven is like to a grain of mustard seed
which a
man took and sowed in his field: which indeed is the least of all seeds
but
when it is grown it is the greatest among herbs
so that the birds of the air
come and lodge in the branches thereof.¡¨ Christ cast the little seed of His
Church into the world: neglected
despised
unnurtured
it sank into the
ground
and man trod it under foot; but when it is grown to its full height and
established in its millennial glory upon earth
all nations shall flow into
it
--¡§the birds shall come and lodge in the branches thereof.¡¨ Once more
the
Apostle Paul preaches from the same text in the book of creation
the
resurrection from the dead. When we see the seed sown
and remember how unlike
it is to the perfect fabric of the future plant
let us reflect that just so
little will the sin-bearing
suffering
decaying body we now wear resemble that
which shall be raised in perfect beauty. (Professor Gaussen.)
The law of food production
God has given to every seed and living plant the tendency to
develop itself
or grow under certain conditions. These conditions are an
adequate supply of moisture
heat
light
air
and the all-essential requisite
of a suitable soil. This law operates mainly through the principle of capillary
attraction. Every blade
leaf
or stalk has in it a number of very small tubes
each with a bore as small as a hair
which has the singular power of drawing up
the sap from the soil into the plant or stalk
so making it grow. This sap when
drawn up lengthens and enlarges the blade or stalk
and continues to do so from
day to day until it reaches an ultimate point fixed by the Creator
when it
issues in blossom and fruit. That point being reached
the process stops
when
man steps in and gathers the fruit which God has provided for him. These tubes
act like so many mouths
which are endowed with a sort of instinct for
selecting from the soil such nourishment as suits the age or species of the
plant or vegetable to which they belong. The sap itself consists of water mixed
with saline
sulphurous
or oily materials
and is prepared in such a manner as
to suit the various seeds that are put into the ground.
I. THE ADVANTAGES
OF THIS LAW in supplying food.
1. It gives continual freshness to our food. Had the food of the
world been all provided on the day when God made men and the cattle
and the
supply been made large enough to last till the end of the world
it must long
ere this time have become corrupt.
2. It supplies abundance. Every seed is endowed with both a power of
self-development and also a power of self-multiplication.
3. It secures variety of food. This is as important as abundance.
Had there been only one species of food we should almost have died from having
the same constantly served up at our tables.
4. It saves space on the world¡¦s surface. Had the whole supply of
the world¡¦s food been provided on the first day the world itself could not have
furnished accommodation.
5. This law secures a permanent supply of food to the end of time.
6. This law impressively teaches man¡¦s continual dependence on God.
7. Never does anything get out of order. There is nothing to repair
everything works with the most perfect order and regularity.
8. Far greater skill and beauty lie beneath the surface than upon
it. This is the characteristic of all God¡¦s works as compared with man¡¦s.
II. THE EXCELLENT
WORKING of this law.
1. In the simplicity of its operation.
2. In its efficiency.
3. In its beautiful adaptations. Processes of the most consummate
skill are set a-going in every part of nature in order to furnish man with
food. Take the case of plants. The bark which covers them defends them from the
extremes of heat and cold
and also opens up a free entrance for sap and air to
reach them. The leaves which clothe them assist in bringing food from all parts
within reach. They are furnished with the power of sucking nourishment for
them; they protect them in their tender state
and carry off by perspiration
the redundant fluids which would otherwise stagnate and turn rancid. They are
the lungs of the plant.
Let there be lights in the firmament
The heavenly luminaries
I.
THESE
LIGHTS ARE ALL GOD¡¦S SERVANTS.
II. THE MISTAKES MAN¡¦S
EYE MAKES IN JUDGING THE WORKS OF GOD. We ¡§limit the Holy One of Israel.¡¨ What
a small world man¡¦s eye would make of God¡¦s creation!
III. THE DEEPEST
HUMILITY IS THE TRUEST WISDOM. The most difficult discovery for man to make in
the world is to find out his own littleness.
IV. UNCONSCIOUS
BENEFITS ARE RENDERED BY ONE. PART OF CREATION TO ANOTHER. Here are seen the
wisdom
power
and goodness of the great Creator. Little do these distant stars
know what benefits they confer on our small world.
V. THE HIGH
ESTIMATE WHICH GOD PUTS ON MAN. He ordains such glorious worlds to serve Him.
VI. THE GREAT SIN
OF IDOL WORSHIP. (J. P. Millar.)
The heavenly bodies
I. THE HEAVENLY
BODIES WERE CALLED INTO EXISTENCE BY GOD.
1. Their magnitude.
2. Variety.
3. Splendour.
II. THE PURPOSES
FOR WHICH THE HEAVENLY BODIES ARE DESIGNED.
1. They were to be for lights. They are unrivalled
should be highly
prized
faithfully used
carefully studied
and devotionally received. These
lights were regnant.
2. They were made to divide the day from the night. Thus the
heavenly bodies were not only intended to give light
but also to indicate and
regulate the time of man
that he might be reminded of the mighty change
and
rapid flight of life. But the recurrence of day and night also proclaim the
need of exertion and repose; hence they call to work
as well as remind of the
grave.
3. To be for signs
and for seasons
and for days and years. The
moon by her four quarters
which last each a little more than seven days
measures for us the weeks and months. The sun
by his apparent path in the sky
measures our seasons and our years
whilst by his daily rotation through the
heavens he measures the days and the hours; and this he does so correctly that
the best watchmakers in Geneva regulate all their watches by his place at noon;
and from the most ancient times men have measured from sun dials the regular
movement of the shadow. It has been well said that the progress of a people in
civilization may be estimated by their regard for time--their care in measuring
and valuing it. Our time is a loan. We ought to use it as faithful stewards.
III. A FEW
DEDUCTIONS FROM THIS SUBJECT.
1. The greatness and majesty of God. How terrible must be the
Creator of the sun. How tranquil must be that Being who has given light to the
moon. One glance into the heavens is enough to overawe man with a sense of the
Divine majesty.
2. The humility that should characterize the soul of mall. ¡§When I
consider the heavens
the work of Thine hand
¡¨ etc. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
Reflections on the sun
In the sun we have the most worthy emblem that the visible
universe presents of Him
who
with the word of His power
kindled up its
glories
and with the strength of His right hand established it in the heavens.
And the analogies between the sun of nature and the Sun of Righteousness are
both striking and instructive.
1. In the opening scene of the fourth day we have a fine image of
the advent of the Redeemer of men. On that morning the sun burst forth in its
unveiled glories
irradiating the new-made earth
and revealing upon its face
scenes of loveliness and grandeur which could neither be seen nor known before.
So arose the Sun of Righteousness upon the world of mankind
an object as
wonderful and as new in His person
and character
and office
as the great orb
of day when it first came forth to run the circuit of the heavens--pouring a
flood of light from above upon benighted humanity
and opening up to them views
of truth
happiness
and immortality
such as the world had never known or
heard before; and
like the solar light
while revealing all else
remaining
Himself a glorious mystery.
2. As the natural sun is the centre of the system of creation
so
the Sun of Righteousness is the vital centre of revealed truth and religion.
3. As the sun shines by his own light
so the Son of God poured the
light of truth upon men from the fountain of His own mind. The instructions He
imparted were neither derived from tradition nor borrowed from philosophy. He
was a self-luminous and Divine Orb
rising upon the darkness of the world
shedding new light
and revealing new truths to bewildered humanity.
4. As in the pure sunbeam we have combined all the colours of the
rainbow in their due proportions
so in Christ we find all virtues and graces
harmoniously blended in one perfect character. In Him we behold every
principle
every affection
every impulse
in perfect equipoise.
5. As the sunlight
on whatever foulness or corruption it may fall
remains uncontaminated
so the Son of Man
amid all the temptations
guilt
and
depravity of earth
continued pure and unspotted.
6. As the light of the sun is unlimited and inexhaustible
so also
are the healing and saving beams of the Sun of Righteousness.
7. As the sun¡¦s law of gravitation extends over the whole solar
system
so the law of love
proceeding from the Sun of Righteousness
extends
its authority over the whole family of man. Gravitation exercises its dominion
alike over the mightiest planet and the minutest asteroid; so the Divine law of
love
with equal hand
imposes its obligations upon kings
and peasants
and
beggars; its authority is no less binding in courts and cabinets than in
churches and families
its voice is to be heeded no less by the diplomatist
sent to foreign realms
than by the preacher who remains among his flock at
home. To all it speaks alike
in the name and in the words of its Divine
original
¡§Love one another
as I have loved you.¡¨ (H. W. Morris
D. D.)
The great time keeper
What are the benefits God intends to secure for us
by the
arrangements here made? By this means
He--
I. Compels men
as far as they can be compelled
to reckon their time
or number their days
aright.
II. Calls us often
to a reckoning with ourselves under the most impressive influences.
III. Invites us to
new purposes of future life.
IV. Teaches us
in
the most impressive manner possible
the value of time.
V. Impresses upon
us
as a truth of practical moment
that everything must be done in its time.
VI. Reminds us
both of our rapid transit here and immortality hereafter.
VII. Teaches us that there is a changeless empire of being
which
theestablished round of seasons and years
and the mechanical order of heaven
itself suggests and confirms. (H. Bushnell
D. D.)
Light
I. ITS SPEED!
Have you any idea of it? The mind becomes confused when we try to imagine it.
For instance
whence
think you
came the bright rays which this very morning
lighted up your room with their dazzling brightness? Ah! they had travelled
very far before they reached you
even all the distance between the sun and the
earth. If a man could take the same journey
travelling at the rate of
ninety-five miles a day
he would take a million of days
or nearly three
thousand years to do it. And yet
how long do you think those bright rays have
been in travelling this morning from the sun to your window? Only eight minutes
and thirteen seconds.
II. But if you
wonder at the speed of light
what will you say when you think of its
ABUNDANCE? This is
if possible
still more wonderful. Who can even imagine the
immense and immeasurable torrents of light which from age to age have gushed
forth from the sun in every direction
constantly filling with their ceaseless
waves the whole extent of planetary space? I do not speak thoughtlessly when I
tell you of the ceaseless flow of these waves of light
for they gush forth
from the sun by night as well as by day. Some young people fancy that when it
is night with us
it is then night in the universe; but this is a childish fancy
for
on the contrary
there is perpetual day in the wide universe of space.
III. ITS BRILLIANT
COLOURS. The rays of light which come to us directly from the sun
are
you
know
of a dazzling white. If you shut carefully all the shutters in your room
so as to make it perfectly dark
and if you allow a single ray of light to
enter through a small hole
you will see it mark on the opposite wall a
beautiful circle of white light. But do you know what would happen to this ray
if you were to place before the hole a prism of finely polished glass? When the
great Newton tried this experiment for the first time
he tells us that he
started with joy. The sight that he saw
and that you would see
would be this:
The prism would decompose and divide the beautiful white ray into seven rays
still more beautiful
of bright-coloured light
which would paint themselves
each separately on the wall
in the following order: violet
indigo
blue
green
yellow
orange
red. These brilliant-coloured rays
of which each white
ray is made up
are reflected in various ways
according to the nature and
composition of different bodies
and thus they give their varied and manifold
tints to all objects in nature. (Professor Gaussen.)
The clock of time
It is beautiful to observe how the motions of the stars of heaven
in their orbits are represented by the flowers of earth in their opening and
closing
in their blossoming and fading. The clock of time has two faces: the
one above
on which the hours are marked by the rising and setting of the orbs
of heaven; the other below
on which the hours are marked by the blossoming and
the fading
the opening and the closing of the flowers. The one exactly
corresponds with the other. The movements of the living creatures depend upon
the movements of the lifeless stars. The daisy follows with its golden eye the
path of the sun through the sky
opens its blossom when he rises
and closes it
when he sets. Thus should it be with our souls. There should be a similar
harmony between them and the motions of the heavenly bodies which God has set
in the firmament for signs to us. Our spiritual life should progress with their
revolutions; should keep time with the music of the spheres; our thoughts
should be widened with the process of the suns. This is the true astrology. And
as the daisy follows the sun all day to the west with its open eye
and
acknowledges no other light that falls upon it--lamplight
moonlight
or
starlight--remaining closed under them all
except under the light of the sun;
so should we follow the Sun of Righteousness whithersoever He goeth
and say
with the Psalmist
¡§Whom have we in the heavens but Thee; and there is none
upon the earth whom we desire besides Thee.¡¨ (H. Macmillan
D. D.)
The clock of the universe
It was the will of God that man should be able to measure and
reckon time
that he might learn its value and regulate its employment of it.
He therefore placed in the heavens a magnificent and perfect clock
which tells
the hours
the days
the weeks
the months
the seasons
and the years--a clock
which no one ever winds up
but which yet goes constantly
and never goes
wrong. The dial plate of this clock is the blue vault of heaven over our
heads--a vault spangled with stars at night
brilliant with light by day--a
vault whose edges
rounded like the edge of a watch
rest on the horizon of our
mountains here at Geneva
while far out at sea the whole great dial plate may
be seen
the dome of the sky seeming to rest on the wide circle of the ocean.
And what
think you
are the hands of this magnificent dial plate? God has
placed on it two
the greater and the lesser. Both are ever shining
both are
ever moving. They are never either too early or too late. The greater is the
great light which rules the day
and which
while it seems to turn above our
heads from east to west across the celestial vault
rising each morning over
the Alps
and setting each evening over the Jura
seems to move at the same
time on the great dial plate of the heavens in a contrary direction
that is to
say
from the west to the east
or from the Jura towards the Alps
advancing
every day the length of twice its own breadth. And the lesser hand of the clock
is the lesser light which rules the night
which progresses also in the same
direction with the sun
but twelve times faster
advancing each day from
twenty-four to twenty-rive times its own breadth
and thus turning round the
dial plate in a single month. Thus
for example
if you look this evening at
the moon as she sets behind the Jura
and if you carefully observe what stars
are hidden behind her disk
tomorrow you will see her again set behind the same
mountain
but three-quarters of an hour later
because she has in the meantime
moved towards the east twenty-four times her own breadth; and then she will
cover stars much nearer the Alps
so that twenty-four moons might be placed in
the sky between the place that she will occupy tomorrow and the one she
occupies today. (Prof. Gaussen.)
No note of time in the dark
When the famous Baron de Trenck came out of his dark dungeon in
Magdeburg
where he could not distinguish night from day
and in which the King
of Prussia had kept him imprisoned for ten years
he imagined that he had been
in it for a much shorter period
because he had no means of marking how the
time had passed
and he had seen no new events
and had had even few thoughts:
his astonishment was extreme when he was told how many years had thus passed
away like a painful dream. (Prof. Gaussen.)
Time should be valued
The savages of North America
after their fatiguing hunting
parties
and warlike expeditions
pass whole weeks and months in amusement and
repose
without once thinking that they are wasting or losing anything that is
valuable. It has been well said that the progress of a people in civilization
may be estimated by their regard for time--their care in measuring and valuing
it. If that be true even of a half-savage people
how much more must it be true
of a Christian nation! Ah
how much ought a Christian to value his time
if he
means to be a faithful steward
since his hours belong not to himself
but to
his gracious Master
who has redeemed him at so great a price; and since he
knows that he must give an account of it at last. (Prof. Gaussen.)
The moon
an emblem of the Church
1. As the moon
though widely
separated from the earth
is attached to it by the invisible bonds of
gravitation
and ordained to travel with it in its appointed course round the
sun--so the Church militant
though distinct from the world
is connected with
it by many ties
and appointed to pursue her pilgrimage along with it to
eternity.
2. As the moon receives all her natural light from the sun
so the
Church receives all her spiritual light from the Sun of Righteousness.
3. As the moon has been appointed to reflect the light she receives
upon the earth to relieve her darkness
to guide the lone mariner on the deep
to lead the belated traveller in his path
and to cheer the shepherd keeping
watch over his flock by night--so the Church has been ordained to reflect her
heavenly light for the guidance of benighted and bewildered humanity around
her. The design of her establishment
like that of the moon
is to give light
upon the earth.
4. As the moon remains not stationary in the heavens over some
favoured spot
but according to the law of her creation
pursues her career
around the globe to cheer and enlighten its every habitable region--so the
Church has been organized and commanded to carry the light of the gospel into
all the world
and preach the unsearchable riches of Christ to every creature.
5. As the moon
while shining in her usual brightness
moves forward
unnoticed
but when under an eclipse has the gaze and remarks of half the
earth¡¦s population--so the Church while walking in light and love
enlists but
little of the world¡¦s attention; but let her honour pass under a cloud
or her
purity be tarnished by the misconduct of but a member
and the eyes of all are
fixed upon her
and her failing repeated by every tongue. Let the Israel of God
take heed to their ways. (H. W. Morris
D. D.)
God calling the luminaries into existence
1. The call was omnipotent.
Man could not have kindled the great lights of the universe.
2. The call was wise. The idea of the midnight sky
as now beheld by
us
could never have originated in a finite mind. The thought was above the
mental life of seraphs. It was the outcome of an infinite intelligence. And
nowhere throughout the external universe do we see the wisdom of God as in the
complicated arrangement
continual motions
and yet easily working and harmony
of the heavenly bodies. There is no confusion. They need no readjustment.
3. The call was benevolent. The sun is one of the most kindly gifts
of God to the world; it makes the home of man a thing of beauty. Also the light
of the moon is welcome to multitudes who have to wend their way by land or sea
amid the stillness of night
to some far-off destination.
4. The call was typal. The same Being who has placed so many lights
in the heavens can also suspend within the firmament of the soul the lights of
truth
hope
and immortality. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
God has placed the lights above us
1. As ornaments of His
throne.
2. To show forth His majesty.
3. That they may the more conveniently give their light to all parts
of the world.
4. To manifest that light comes from heaven
from the Father of
lights.
5. The heavens are most agreeable to the nature of these lights.
6. By their moving above the world at so great a distance
they help
to discover the vast circuit of the heavens. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
The heavenly bodies
1. Not to honour them as
gods.
2. To honour God in and by them (Psalms 8:1; Timothy 6:16; Isaiah 6:2). (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
The place and use of creatures are assigned unto them by God
1. That He may manifest His
sovereignty.
2. That He may establish a settled order amongst the creatures.
3. Let all men abide in their sphere and calling.
The stars and the spiritual life
Not for secular purposes alone are the divisions of time marked
out for us by the heavenly bodies; they have a still higher and more important
purpose to serve in connection with our spiritual life.
I. The lights
which God hath set in the firmament BREAK UP THE MONOTONY OF LIFE. Life is not
a continuous drudgery
a going on wearily in a perpetual straight line; but a
constant ending and beginning. We do not see all the road of life before us;
the bends of its clays and months and years hide the future from our view
and
allure us on with new hopes
until at last we come without fatigue to the end
of the journey.
II. The lights
which God hath set in the firmament DIVIDE OUR LIFE INTO SEPARATE AND MANAGEABLE
PORTIONS. Each day brings its own work
and its own rest.
III. The lights
which God hath set in the firmament ENABLE US TO REDEEM THE TIME to retrieve
the misspent past by the right improvement of the present. Each day is a
miniature of the whole of life and of all the seasons of the year. Morning
answers to spring; midday to summer; afternoon to autumn; evening to winter. We
are children in the morning
with fresh feelings and hopes; grown-up men and
women
with sober and sad experiences
at noon; aged persons
with whom the
possibilities of life are over
in the afternoon and night.
IV. The lights
which God hath set in the firmament ENABLE US TO SET OUT ON A NEW COURSE FROM
SOME MARKED AND MEMORABLE POINT. God is giving to us
with every new horizon of
life
a sense of recovered freedom
separating us from past painful
experiences
and enabling us to begin a new course of life on a higher plane.
And with this division of time by the orbs of heaven--this arrangement of days
and months and years
with their perpetually recurring new opportunities of
living no more unto ourselves but unto God
--coincide the nature and design of
the blessed gospel
whose unique peculiarity is
that it is the cancelling of
debts that could never be paid
the assurance that our relations to God are
entirely changed
and that all old things are passed away
and all things
become new. It is this association that gives such importance to anniversaries
birthdays
and new year¡¦s days-seasons considered peculiarly auspicious for commencing
life afresh
and which are generally taken advantage of to form new
resolutions. (H. Macmillan
D. D.)
Lessons of the firmament
I. LET US LOOK AT
THE SUN
AS AN EMBLEM OF GOD HIMSELF. The king of the hosts of heaven
the
centre of revolving orbs
the source of light and heat.
II. THE MOON
SHINNING WITH BORROWED LIGHT
MAY REPRESENT THE CHURCH
which
like a city set
on a hill
only reflects the light that falls on it. Out of Zion
the
perfection of beauty
God shines.
III. THE STARS MAY
REPRESENT CONSPICUOUS CHARACTERS. The brightest star and best is the Star of
Bethlehem
which ushered in Christ.
The star of the East is the daystar which marks our bright
guiding light
Jesus Christ. He is the centre of attraction to all. (J. B.
Smith
D. D.)
The fourth day
The fourth day¡¦s work is ¡§lights set in heaven¡¨: mighty work: more
glorious far than the ¡§light¡¨ upon the first day. Then the light was undefined.
Now lights are come; one with warmth; one cold but shining: each defined; the
one direct
the other reflex; but both to rule and mightily affect
not the
earth only
but even the wide waters: giving another cheek
too
to darkness
not only taking from it day
but invading and conquering it by the moon and
stars in its own domain of night. And so after that the seas of lust are
bounded
and the fruits of righteousness begin to grow and bud
a sun
a mighty
light is kindled in our heaven
--Christ dwells there
God¡¦s eternal word and
wisdom
--no longer undefined
but with mighty warmth and power
making the
whole creation to bud and spring heavenward: while as a handmaid
another
light
of faith
grows bright within
--our inward moon
truth received on
testimony
the Church¡¦s light; for as men say
Christ is the sun
the Church
the moon
so is faith our moon within to rule the night. Of these two
the
lesser light must have appeared the first; for each day grew and was measured
¡§from the evening to the morning¡¨; just as faith
with borrowed light
in every
soul still precedes the direct beams of this light or Word within. Now both
shine to pour down light. Oft would darkness fall
if our moon of faith rose
not to rule the night. Yet fair as she is
she but reminds us of present night
making us sigh for the day star and the perfect day. These lights are ¡§for
signs and for seasons and for years
¡¨ and ¡§to rule over the day and over the
night also.¡¨ For ¡§signs¡¨--first
of what we are. We have thought this earth is
fixed: but sun and moon show that we are but wanderers here. We have supposed
ourselves the centre; that it is the sun that moves. The lights will teach us
in due time that he is steadfast: it is we who journey on. Again
these lights
are ¡§for a sign¡¨ how we stand
and where we are; by our relative positions
toward them showing us
if we will learn
our real situation. For the moon is
new and feeble
when
between us and the sun
it trenches on his place
and
sets at eventide. So is our faith: put in Christ¡¦s place
it must be weak: dark
will be our night: we shall move on unillumined. Not so when in her place
not
in His
but over against Him
our moon of faith rises at even
as our Sun
withdraws Himself. Now she trenches not upon Him; therefore she is full of
light
making the midnight almost as the noon-day. Signs they are
too
to the
man
when at length he walks upon the earth
--the image of God
which after
fruits and lights is formed in us
--to guide him through the wastes within the
creature
as he seeks to know its lengths and breadths that he may subdue it
all. The lights are ¡§for seasons¡¨ also; to give healthful alternations of cold
and heat
and light and darkness. Sharp winters with their frosts
chill and
deadness in our affections
and the hours of darkness which recur to dim our
understandings
are not unmixed evil. Ceaseless summer would wear us out:
therefore the lights are ¡§for seasons
¡¨ measuring out warmth and light as we
can profit by it. So faith wanes and waxes
and Christ is seen and hid
each
change making the creature learn its own dependence; forcing it to feel
that
though blessed
it is a creature
all whose springs of life and joy are not its
own. These lights
too
are ¡§to rule over the day and over the night.¡¨ To rule
the creature
much more to rule such gifts as the day
wrought by God Himself
in it
as yet has been unknown. Even to bound the natural darkness hitherto has
seemed high attainment. Now we learn that the precious gifts
which God
vouchsafes
need ruling; an earnest this of that which comes more fully on the
sixth day. A sun ¡§to rule the day¡¨ leads to the man ¡§to have dominion
¡¨ set to
rule
not the day only
but every creature. It is no slight step
when God¡¦s
aim
hitherto unknown
is learnt; that in His work this gift is for this
that
for the other purpose; when it is felt that the best gifts may be misused and
wasted; that they need governing
and may and must be ruled. (A. Jukes.)
The heavenly bodies emblematic of the spiritual
It is interesting to notice the many applications made in
Scripture of the heavenly bodies as emblems of the spiritual.
1. God is a Sun and Shield (Psalms 84:11).
2. Christ is the Sun of Righteousness (Malachi 4:2); the Light of the John 8:12); the Morning Star (Revelation 2:16); the dispeller of the
darkness (2 Samuel 23:4).
3. The Church is fair as the moon (Song of Solomon 6:10); clear as the Song of Solomon 6:10): the moon under her
feet (Revelation 12:1); crowned with stars; the
saints are to shine as the stars (Daniel 12:3); with different glories (1 Corinthians 15:41); as the sun in
his Judges 5:31); as the sun in the kingdom
of their Father Matthew 13:43).
4. Christ¡¦s ministers are likened to stars (Revelation 1:16-20).
5. Apostates are likened to wandering stars (Jude 1:13).
6. It was a star that lighted the wise men (Matthew 2:2).
7. At the coming crisis of earth¡¦s history
all these heavenly orbs
are to be shaken and darkened for a season (Mark 13:25). (H. Bonar
D. D.)
Lights
I. THE LIGHTS OF
ANGELS
OF MEN
AND OF ANIMALS. The angels behold the face of God and watch His
plans from age to age. Compared with us
they live in the blaze of day: we have
the lesser light of human reason
which relieves
but does not banish
the
night. There are around us other conscious creatures
endowed with still
feebler powers
who grope in the dim starlight of animal existence. God is the
¡§Father of all lights.¡¨
II. THE LIGHTS OF
HEATHENISM
JUDAISM
AND CHRISTIANITY. What a glimmering starlight of religious
knowledge is that of the heathen millions! How partial and imperfect was the
knowledge that even the Jews possessed! At last ¡§the Sun of Righteousness arose
with healing in His wings.¡¨ The world has not exhausted
it has scarcely
touched
the wealth of spiritual light and life in Him.
III. THE LIGHTS OF
CHILDHOOD
MANHOOD
AND THE HEAVENLY STATE. The faint gleam of light in
childhood develops into the stronger light of manhood
but even that does not
banish the night. ¡§In Thy light we shall see light.¡¨ (T. M. Herbert
M. A.)
Genesis of the luminaries
I. EXPLANATION OF
THE PASSAGE.
1. Twin triads of the creative week. This venerable creation archive
evidently divides into two great eras
each era consisting of three days; each
day of the first era having a corresponding day in the second era. Thus
to the
chemical light of the first day correspond the sidereal lights of the fourth
day. To the terrestrial individualization of the second day corresponds the
vital individualization of the fifth day. To the genesis of the lands and of
the plants on the third day corresponds the genesis of the mammals and of man
on the sixth day. Thus
the first era of the triad was an era of prophecy; the
second era of the triad an era of fulfilment.
2. The two-fold difficulty.
3. Panorama of the emerging luminaries. There is still light on the
newly-verdured mountain and mead. But it is a strange
weird light; perhaps
like that of the zodiacal gleam
or the dying photosphere
or perhaps like the
iris-hued
lambent shimmer of the northern aurora. Suddenly the goldening
gateways of the East open
and
lo
a dazzling orb
henceforth the lord of day
strides forth from his cloud pavilion as a bridegroom from his chamber
and
rejoices to run his course as a giant his race; upward and upward he royally
mounts; downward and downward he royally bows: as he nears the goal of his
resplendent march
lo
the blushing portals of the West open to receive him:
and lo
again
his gentle consort
¡§pale empress of the night
¡¨ sweeps forth in
silver sheen
while around her planet and comet
Arcturus and Mazzaroth
Orion
and Pleiades
hold glittering court.
4. Purpose of the luminaries.
II. MORAL MEANING
OF THE STORY.
1. The luminaries are guides to Jesus Christ. The Creator has
expressly bidden us accept His ordinances of the heavenly bodies as the pledge
of His covenant of grace in the Divine Son (Jeremiah 31:35; Jeremiah 33:20-26; Psalms 89:35-37).
2. Jesus Christ and His Church and His truths are the true
luminaries
shining in the true heavens. Jesus Christ Himself is the true
Greater Light
ruling the day as the Sun of Righteousness
coming out of the
chamber of His eternity as the King of the worlds
going forth from the ends of
the heavens
circling unto the ends thereof
and nothing is hidden from His
heat Psalms 19:5-6). The Church of Jesus
Christ--Immanuel¡¦s real
spiritual Church
the aggregate of saintly
characters--is the true lesser light: ruling the night as the moon of His
grace
shining because He shines upon her
silvering the pathway of this
world¡¦s benighted travellers. The truths of Jesus Christ--the truths which He
came to disclose--are the true stars of heaven
from age to age sparkling on
His brow as His many-jewelled diadem. And Jesus Christ and His Church and His
truths are the world¡¦s true regulators--serving for its signs and its seasons
its days and its years. Let me cite a single instance. Why do not the world¡¦s
scholars still measure time from the Greek Olympiads? Why do not the world¡¦s
kings still reckon their annals from the Year of Rome? Why do not the world¡¦s
scientists date their era from some memorable transit or occultation? Ah
Jesus
Christ and His Church and His truth are too much for them. And so they all
even
the most infidel
bow in unconscious homage before the Babe of Bethlehem
reckoning their era from that manger birth
dating their correspondence
their
legislations
their discoveries
their exploits
with the august words: Anno
Domini. Yes
Christianity is humanity¡¦s true meridian
dictating its measures
of time and space
its calendars and eras
its latitudes and longitudes. All
history
if we did but know it
is time¡¦s great ecliptic around the eternal Son
of God. Happy the hour
brother
when the fourth day dawns on thy soul
and
thou takest thy place in the moral heavens
henceforth to shine and rule as one
of earth¡¦s luminaries!
2. A personal entreaty. Take heed
O friend
lest the day come when
the stars
now fighting in their courses for thee
shall fight against thee Judges 5:20). In that coming day of
sack-clothed sun and crimsoned moon and falling stars
one thing shall survive
the dissolving heavens and melting elements: It is the blood-bought Church of
the living God. (G. D. Boardman.)
Time
There are few words much oftener in our mouths than that short but
most important word
time. In one sense
the thought of it seems to mingle
itself with almost everything which we do. It is the long measure of our
labour
expectation
and pain; it is the scanty measure of our rest and joy.
Its shortness or its length are continually given as our reason for doing
or
leaving undone
the various works which concern our station
our calling
our
family
our souls. What present time is; which it is most difficult to
conceive
if we try it by more exact thought than we commonly bestow on it; for
even as we try to catch it
though but in idea
it slips by us. Subdivide ore¡¨
measure as we may
we never actually reach it. It was future
it is past; it is
the meeting point of these two
and itself
it seems
is not. And so
again
whether there is really any future time; whether it can exist
except in our
idea
before it is. Or whether there can be any past time; what that can be
which is no more; whose track of light has vanished from us in the darkness;
which is as a shadow that swept by us
and is gone. All this is full of wonder
and it may become
in many ways
most useful matter of reflection to those who
can bear to look calmly into the depths of their being. It may lead us to
remember how much of what is round us here is
after all
seeming and unreal
and so force us from our too ready commerce with visible shadows into communion
with invisible realities. It may show us how continually we are mocked in the
regions of the senses and the understanding
and so drive us for certainty and
truth to the higher gifts of redeemed reason and fellowship with God. It may
abate the pride of argument on spiritual things
and teach us to take more
humbly what has been revealed. And this should give us higher notions of that
eternity towards which we are ever drifting on. We are apt to think of it as
being merely prolonged time. But the true idea of eternity is not prolonged
time
but time abolished. To enter on eternity is to pass out of the succession
of time into this everlasting present. And this suggests to us the two
remarkable characters
which together make up the best account we can give of
time. The one--how completely
except in its issue
it passes from us: the
other--how entirely
in that issue
it ever abides with us. In itself how
completely does it pass away. Past time
with all its expectations
pains
and
pleasures
how it is gone from us! The pleasures and the pains of childhood
of
youth
nay
even of the last year
where are they? Every action has tended more
to strengthen the capricious tyranny of our self-will
or to bring us further
under the blessed liberty of Christ¡¦s law. We are the sum of all this past
time. It was the measure of our opportunities
of our growth. We are the result
of all these minutes. And if we thus look on past time
how
at this break in
our lives
should we look on to the future? Surely with calm trust
and with
resolutions of increased earnestness. Let our thanksgivings grow into the one
our humiliation change into the other. If time is the opportunity and measure
of this growth
what a work have we to perform in it! How should we strive to
store it full with deeds which may indeed abide! (Bishop S. Wilberforce.)
The sun
The sun is almost the heart and brain of the earth. It is the
regulator of its motions
from the orbital movement in space
to the flow of
its currents in the sea and air
the silent rise of vapours that fly with the
winds to become the source of rivers over the land; and the still more profound
action in the living growth of the plant and animal. It is no creator of life;
but through its outflowing light
heat
and attraction
it keeps the whole
world in living activity
doing vastly more than simply turning off days and
seasons. Without the direct sunlight there may be growth
as many productions
of the sea and shady grounds prove. But were the sun¡¦s face perpetually veiled
far the greater part of living beings would dwindle and die. Many chemical
actions in the laboratory are suspended by excluding light; and in the
exquisite chemistry of living beings this effect is everywhere marked: even the
plants that happen to grow beneath the shade of a small tree or hedge in a
garden evince
by their dwarfed size and unproductiveness
the power of the
sun¡¦s rays
and the necessity of this orb to the organic period of the earth¡¦s
history. (Bib. Sacra.)
God more glorious than the sun
We are told that the late Dr. Livingstone of America
and Louis
Bonaparte
ex-king of Holland
happened once to be fellow passengers
with many
others
on board one of the North River steamboats. As the doctor was walking
the deck in the morning
and gazing at the refulgence of the rising sun
which
appeared to him unusually attractive
he passed near the distinguished
stranger
and
stopping for a moment
accosted him thus: ¡§How glorious
sir
is
that object!¡¨ pointing gracefully with his hand to the sun. The ex-king assenting
he immediately added
¡§And how much more glorious
sir
must be its Maker
the
Sun of Righteousness!¡¨ A gentleman who overheard this short incidental
conversation
being acquainted with both personages
now introduced them to
each other
and a few more remarks were interchanged. Shortly after
the doctor
again turned to the ex-king
and
With that air of polished complaisance for
which he was remarkable
invited him first
and then the rest of the company
to attend a morning prayer. It is scarcely necessary to add that the invitation
was promptly complied with.
The luminaries
The use of these bodies is said to be not only for dividing the
day from the night
but ¡§for signs and seasons
and days and years.¡¨ They
ordinarily afford signs of weather to the husbandman; and prior to the
discovery of the use of the loadstone
were of great importance to the mariner.
They appear also on some extraordinary occasions to have been premonitory to
the world. Previous to the destruction of Jerusalem
our Lord foretold that
there should be ¡§great earthquakes in divers places
and famines
and
pestilences
and fearful sights
and great signs from heaven.¡¨ And it is said
by Josephus
that a comet like a flaming sword was seen for a long time over
that devoted city
a little before its destruction by the Romans. Heathen
astrologers made gods of these creatures
and filled the minds of men with
chimerical fears concerning them. Against these God warns His people; saying
¡§Be ye not dismayed at the signs of heaven.¡¨ This
however
does not prove but
that He may sometimes make use of them. Modern astronomers
by accounting for
various phenomena
would deny their being signs of anything: but to avoid the
superstitions of heathenism
there is no necessity for our running into atheism.
The heavenly bodies are also said to be for seasons
as winter and summer
day
and night. We have no other standard for the measuring of time. The grateful
vicissitudes also which attend them are expressive of the goodness of God. If
it were always day or night
summer or winter
our enjoyments would be
unspeakably diminished. Well is it said at every pause
¡§And God saw that it
was good!¡¨ David improved this subject to a religious purpose. He considered
¡§day unto day as uttering speech
and night unto night as showing knowledge.¡¨
Every night we retire we are reminded of death
and every morning we arise of
the resurrection. In beholding the sun also
¡§which as a bridegroom cometh out
of his chamber
and rejoiceth as a strong man to run his race
¡¨ we see every
day a glorious example of the steady and progressive ¡§path of the just
which
shineth more and more unto the perfect day.¡¨ (A. Fuller.)
Let the waters bring forth abundantly
Fish and fowl
I.
THAT
LIFE IS THE IMMEDIATE CREATION OF GOD.
1. Life was not an education.
2. It was not the result of combination.
3. It was a miraculous gift. There are two words in this sentence
that should be remembered
and joined together most closely
they are ¡§God¡¨ and
¡§life.¡¨ This should be so in the soul of man
as God is the source of its true
and higher life. If the Church were to remember the connection of these two
great words
she would be much more powerful in her toil. Life was at first the
miraculous gift of God. Its continuance is His gift.
II. THAT LIFE IS VARIED IN
ITS MANIFESTATION AND CAPABILITY.
1. Life is varied in its manifestations. There were created on this
day both fish and fowl. Thus life is not a monotony. It assumes different
forms. It grows in different directions. It has several kingdoms. It has
numerous conditions of growth.
2. Life is varied in its capability. The fish swim in the water. The
fowls fly in the air; the abilities and endowments of each are distinct and
varied. Each takes a part in the great ministry of the universe. The whole in
harmony is the joy of man.
3. Life is abundant and rich in its source. The waters brought forth
abundantly. There was no lack of life-giving energy on the part of God. The
world is crowded with life. The universe will not soon become a grave
for even
in death there is life
hidden but effective to a new harvest.
4. Life is good in its design.
III. THAT THE LOWER SPHERES OF
LIFE ARE RICHLY ENDOWED WITH THE DIVINE BLESSING.
1. It was the blessing of increasing numbers.
2. It was the blessing of an extended occupation of the land and
sea.
3. Let us always remember that the blessing of God rests upon the
lower spheres of life. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
Genesis of the animals
I. EXPLANATION OF THE
PASSAGE.
1. Animals the issue of fifth and sixth days.
2. Panorama of the emerging animals. Lo! the nautilus spreads his
sail
and the caterpillar winds his cocoon
and the spider weaves his web
and
the salmon darts through the sea
and the lizard glides among the rocks
and
the eagle soars the sky
and the lion roams the jungle
and the monkey chatters
among the trees
and all animate creation waits the advent and lordship of man
God¡¦s inspiration and therefore God¡¦s image
God¡¦s image and therefore God¡¦s
viceroy.
3. The animal succession a progress.
And with this Mosaic account of the origin of life
ascending from
plant
by way of animal
to man
the geological records substantially agree:
first
plants and fishes of the Palaeozoic period; secondly
birds and reptiles
of the Mesozoic period; thirdly
mammals and man of the Neozoic period.
4. ¡§After their kind.¡¨ Almost like a prophetic caveat against
the modern hypothesis of the mutability of species.
5. The Creator¡¦s blessing. The benediction of fertility.
6. The Divine delight.
II. MORAL MEANING OF THE
STORY.
1. Animals have ¡§souls.¡¨ What in man we call reason
in animals we
call instinct. As that mysterious force which vitalizes and builds up the fabric
of the human body is the same mysterious force which vitalizes and builds up
the fabric of the animalcule
so that mysterious guide which teaches Newton how
to establish the law of gravity
and Shakespeare how to write his ¡§Hamlet
¡¨ and
Stephenson how to bridge the St. Lawrence
seems substantially to be the same
mysterious guide which teaches the beaver how to build his dam
and the spider
how to weave his web
and the ant how to dig his spiral home. The difference
does not seem to be so much a difference in nature or kind
as in degree or
intensity. As the diamond is the same substance with charcoal--only under
superior crystalline figure--so reason seems to be substantially the same with
instinct--only in an intensely organized state. One thing is common to man and
animals: it is that mysterious principle or force which
in want of a better
name
and in distinction from the term spirit
we call ¡§soul.¡¨
2. Animals perhaps are immortal. I quote from that profound treatise
by Louis Agassiz
entitled ¡§Essay on Classification¡¨: ¡§Most of the arguments of
philosophy in favour of the immortality of man apply equally to the permanency
of the immaterial principle in other living beings. May I not add that a future
life in which man should be deprived of that great source of enjoyment and
intellectual and moral improvement
which results from the contemplation of the
harmonies of an organic world
would involve a lamentable loss? And may we not
look to a spiritual concert of the combined worlds and all their inhabitants in
presence of their Creator
as the highest conception of paradise?¡¨ (See Romans 8:19-23.) (G. D.Boardman.)
The prolific character of the life of the ocean
The finny tribes are specially prolific. The eggs of fish
or
spawn
produce vast multitudes. The row of a codfish contains nine millions of
eggs
of a flounder
about a million and a half
and of a mackerel
half a
million. ¡§The unchecked produce of one pair of herrings would in a very few
years crowd the Atlantic.¡¨ So is it also with birds. The passenger pigeon of
North America has been seen in flocks a mile broad
and taking four hours in
passing
at the rate of a mile a minute
and was calculated to contain 250 millions
of Psalms 104:24-25). The microscope also
shows there are beings with perfect organs of nutrition and locomotion
a
million of which would not exceed in bulk one grain of sand
and eight millions
of which might be compressed within a grain of mustard seed. Others are so
small that 500 millions of them could live in a dish of water. There are even
animalcules so minute that a cubic inch could contain a million millions of
them. (Jacobus.)
Shoals of animalculae
Some few years ago a newspaper correspondent
writing from the
Gulf of Siam
said: ¡§We steamed forward at the rate of six or seven knots an
hour
and a wonderful spectacle presented itself. Athwart the vessel
long
white waves of light were seen rushing towards it
ever brighter and in swifter
motion
till they seemed to flow together
and at length nothing could be seen
on the water but a whirling white light. Looking stedfastly at it
the water
the air
and the horizon seemed blended in one; thick streamers of mist seemed
to float by both sides of the ship with frantic speed. The appearances of
colour resembled those which arise when one turns a black-and-white striped
ball so quickly that the white stripes seem to run together. The spectacle
lasted for five minutes
and was repeated once again for two minutes. No doubt
it was caused by shoals of animalculae in the water.¡¨
Resemblances between fishes and birds
I must tell you of a discovery made by a very dear friend whom I
have lost
the excellent Dr. Prevost
a learned anatomist of Geneva. He often
mentioned it to me as affording a remarkable testimony to the Word of God. It
helps to explain the words of the 20th verse. We may perhaps wonder that two
such apparently different kinds of creatures as fishes and birds should be
classed together. Who among us would have thought of such an arrangement? But
dear children
scientific men have discovered
on examination
that there are
very close resemblances between them in their anatomical structure and in some
other things. Both spring from eggs; and while the one class--the birds--swim
in the air with wings
the other--the fishes--fly in the water with fins. And
besides these points of resemblance
the discovery made by Dr. Prevost
which
astonished himself and interested the learned world very much
was this
that
the globules of the blood of fishes and birds are seen to be the same
when
closely examined
and do not at all resemble the globules of the blood of those
animals which sprang from the earth on the sixth day. (Prof. Gaussen.)
Some of the faculties and organs of fishes
Fishes appear to be endowed with the senses common to land
animals. Those of touch and taste are supposed to be feeble
in general: though
some are furnished with flexible feelers
or organs of touch. Their organs of
smelling and hearing are more acute
and are in their structure happily adapted
to the element in which they live. These latter senses have no external
avenues
as in land animals; for immediate and perpetual contact with the dense
element of water would soon prove ruinous to their delicate and sensitive
nerves. Smelling is said to be the most acute of all their senses. The
olfactory membrane and nerves in them are of remarkable extent; in a large
shark they expand over a surface of no less than twelve or thirteen square
feet. Hence
by this sense the finny tribes can discover their prey or their
enemies at a great distance
and direct their course in the thickest darkness
and amid the most agitated waves. Possessing the foregoing faculties fishes are
not without a degree of sagacity. They have been found even capable of
instruction
and been taught to come when called by their names
and to
assemble for their food at the sound of a whistle or bell. They are said to be
among the most long-lived of all animals. The carp has been known to reach more
than a hundred years of age. And Kirby relates that a pike was taken in 1754
at Kaiserslautern
which had a ring fastened to the gill covers
from which it
appeared to have been put into the pond of that castle by order of Frederick II
in 1487--a period of two hundred and sixty-seven years. Fishes excel in
strength
and seem to be capable of prolonged exertion without apparent
fatigue. Even the feathered tribe
in this
must yield the palm to the finny
race. The shark will out travel the eagle
and the salmon will out strip the
swallow in speed. The thunny will dart with the rapidity of an arrow
and the
herring will travel for days and weeks at the rate of sixteen miles an hour
without respite or repose. Sharks have been observed to follow and play around
a ship through its whole voyage across the Atlantic; and the same fish
when
harpooned
has been known to drag a vessel of heavy tonnage at a high speed
against wind and tide. (Prof. Gaussen.)
Fecundity of fishes
This ¡§blessing¡¨ is to be regarded
not simply as a solemn word of
command
but the imparting of reproducing energies to the varied tribes of the
deep. And to see how effective this blessing was
we need but look at the
results which followed. Nothing can exceed that ¡§abundance¡¨ brought forth. If
we attempt to estimate the number of eggs in the toes of various kinds of fish
we may be able to form some faint conception of it. The roe of the cod fish
according to Harmer¡¦s estimate
contains 3
686
000 eggs; of the flounder
225
000; of the mackerel
500
000; of the tench
350
000; of the carp
203
000;
of the roach
100
000; of the sole
nearly 100
000; of the pike
50
000; of the
herring
the perch
and the smelt
from 20
000 to 30
000. Other species are
equally prolific. Such numbers present an idea of fecundity that is truly
overwhelming. It must be observed
however
that a large proportion of the eggs
deposited are destroyed in various ways; they are eagerly sought after by other
fishes
by aquatic birds
and by reptiles
as food; and in the young state
they are pursued and devoured by larger ones of their own species
as well as
by those of others. Still the numbers which arrive at maturity surpass all
comprehension
as appears from the countless myriads of those that are of
gregarious and migratory habits. Impelled and guided by that mysterious power
we call instinct
fishes
at certain seasons
migrate and travel in immense
droves to seek a suitable place and temperature for the reproduction of their
species. Vast migrations take place from the oceans into all the rivers of the
earth; the salmon and others often ascend large streams in great numbers for
hundreds and even thousands of miles. Vaster yet by far are the migrations that
occur in the ocean from one region to another. The migratory tribes of the sea
are very numerous; of these
among the best known is the cod; at spawning time
these fish proceed northward
and frequent the shallows of the ocean
such as
the banks of Newfoundland
where they are found in infinite multitudes. The
haddock resorts
in like manner
to northern coasts
and has been found in
immense shoals of more than twenty miles long and three miles broad. The
mackerel also is a migratory tribe; these winter in the Arctic and Antarctic
oceans
from whence in the spring they emerge from their hiding places in
innumerable myriads
and proceed to more genial seas to deposit their eggs. The
thunny travels for the same end in numbers without number. But the most notable
of all the migratory species are the herrings; these
like many others
pass
the winter in high northern latitudes
and at different times through the
summer
proceed southward in search of food
and to deposit their spawn. Some
idea of their numbers may be formed from the vast quantities that are taken.
Many years since
when the business was prosecuted on a more limited scale than
at present
it was reported that on the coast of Norway no less than 20
000
000
were frequently taken at a single fishing; and that the average capture of the
season exceeded 400
000
000. At Gottenberg
700
000
000 were annually caught.
Yet all these millions were but a fraction of the numbers taken by the English
Dutch
and other nations. But all that are taken by all nations put together
are no more missed from the countless hosts of the ocean than a drop out of the
full bucket. Their shoals
says Kirby
consist of millions of myriads
and are
many leagues in width
many fathoms in depth
and so dense that the fishes
touch each other; and this stream continues to move at a rapid rate past any
particular point nearly all summer. If
then
these single groups of a few
species that happen to fall under the observation of man be thus numerous
or
rather innumerable
it is obvious that the aggregate of all the orders
genera
and species
making up the whole population of the deep
must infinitely
transcend all the powers of human enumeration! (Prof. Gaussen.)
Birds
As in the beauteous creations of the vegetable world
and among
the countless living tenants of the deep
so also among the birds of the air
we behold indubitable evidences and most impressive displays of the universal
and constant agency of God. In all their doings and movements
the guiding
finger of their Creator is clearly seen. Prior to all experience
and
independent of all instruction
we see the little feathered tribes undertake
and accomplish all the ingenious duties of their being; and accomplish them
too
with a certainty and perfection which no instruction could teach
and no
experience improve. The sparrow performs and goes through with the whole
process of building
laying
hatching
and rearing
as successfully the first
time as the last. And whence is all this to the little bird of the air
if not
from the omnipresent and infinite Spirit? Who or what leads the young female
bird to prepare a nest
untaught and undirected
long before she has need of
it? Who instructs each particular species in its own peculiar style of
architecture? And when the first egg is brought forth
who teaches her what she
must do with it? or that it is a thing to be taken care of
that it must be
laid and preserved in the nest? And the germ of future life being wrapped in
the egg
who teaches its little owner that heat will develop and mature that
germ? Who acquaints her with the fact that her own body possesses the precise
kind and degree of warmth required? And what is it that holds her so constantly
and so long upon the nest
amid light and darkness
storm and sunshine
without
the least knowledge or idea as to what the result or fruit of all this toil and
self-denial is to be? Here
then
are operations carried on
and effects
produced
which must constrain every candid mind to recognize in them the
invisible band of God. Again
the migration of birds--how astonishing is all
this! ¡§The stork in the heavens knoweth her appointed times; and the turtle and
the crane and the swallow observe the time of their coming.¡¨ So fixed are the
dates of departing and returning with many tribes of the feathered race that
¡§in certain eastern countries at the present day
almanacs are timed and
bargains struck upon the data they supply.¡¨ Now
who informs them that the day
is come for them to take their leave? or announces to them that the time has
arrived for their return? Without science
without a map
without a compass
without a waymark
who acquaints them with the direction they are to take? or
measures out for them the length of the journey they have to perform? Who
enables them to pursue undeviatingly their course over pathless oceans
and
through the trackless voids of the atmosphere
alike in the day time and in the
night season
and to arrive exactly at the same spot from year to year? To whom
shall we ascribe this extraordinary power--to God
or to the little bird? It
must be either to the one
or to the other. It is obvious that the little bird
does not possess either the reasoning powers
or the geographical acquaintance
or the meteorological knowledge
which would enable it either to plan or to
carry out such astonishing enterprises. Indeed
could man thus
amid all storms
and darkness
infallibly steer his voyages over the main
it would render
superfluous the use of his compass and sextant
and enable him at once to
dispense with his trigonometry and logarithms. Whatever name
then
we may give
this mysterious power
and in whatever light we may regard these astonishing
facts
correct and sound reasoning as well as the Scripture
will lead us to the
conviction and acknowledgment of the illustrious Newton
that all this is done
through the immediate influence and guidance of Him
¡§in whom all live and move
and have their being
¡¨ and without whom ¡§not a sparrow falleth to the ground.¡¨
In the feathered population of our globe we also behold
not proofs only
but
most interesting and delightful displays of the goodness of God. The very
introduction of the winged race into the new-made world was
in itself
a
demonstration of the benevolence of the Divine mind
as they constitute one of
its most beautiful and lovely features. Birds are also living parables
and as
such the Great Teacher often employed them. (Prof. Gaussen.)
Insects
On the fifth day were also produced the insect population of the
new-made world
for these
as well as birds
must be included in the term
winged thing. This department of animated nature presents to us a field of
study all but illimitable
insects being by far the most numerous and
diversified of all the living orders that occupy the dry land. Not less than
100
000 different species are already known
and many more doubtless remain to
be discovered. A distinguished naturalist has made the statement
that there
are probably six species of insects to every species of plants; this estimate
therefore
would make the entire number of insect species on the face of the
globe considerably over half a million. The insect tribes are of all
conceivable forms
habits
and instincts. (Prof. Gaussen.)
Reflections on the insect creation
Insects
like every other class of living creatures
have their
place to occupy
and their office to fulfil in the Divine plan
and form an
essential link in the great chain of animated nature. Small and insignificant
as they appear
viewed singly
yet taken collectively
they make up armies far
more potent and formidable than either Alexander
or Caesar
or Bonaparte ever
mustered; and these being everywhere dispersed
and daily and hourly at work in
their several departments
they constitute an agency of great power
and no
doubt of great good
in the economy of the world. We may not be able to
determine how
or what
each particular species contributes to the benefit of
the great whole; but we may be sure that their great variety of organs
and
their wonderful instinctive capacities
have been bestowed upon them for ends
worthy of the wisdom that produced them. The works of the Lord are perfect
and
nothing has been made in vain. Insects are an ornament to the earth¡¦s scenery
and
no doubt
were designed by the munificent Creator to be objects of
pleasurable observation and study to man. The insect creation teaches us that
God is to be seen in the least as well as in the greatest of His works. He is
in all and through all. The guidance of His finger is to be traced as
distinctly in the circles of the spider¡¦s web as in the orbits of the planets;
and the operation of His hand is as plainly seen in the lustre of an insect¡¦s
wing
as in the resplendent disk of the sun
which sheds light and life on
surrounding globes. In the history of insects
we meet with the most beautiful
illustration that all nature affords of the great and distinguishing doctrine
of Christianity--the resurrection of the dead. (Prof. Gaussen.)
Verse 22-23
And God blessed them
saying
Be fruitful and multiply
God¡¦s blessing abundant
At the close of this day the Lord does what He has not done on any
of the other four days; He blesses that which He has created
and the object of
His blessing is an abundant and perpetual increase.
God is liberal; munificent in His donations both temporal and spiritual. Does
He give joy? It is unspeakable joy. Does He give peace? It is a peace which
passeth all understanding. Does He give pleasures? They are pleasures for
evermore. Does He give glory: It is an exceeding eternal weight of glory. The
close-handed and narrow-hearted Christian has not learned to be so in the
school of the Master. All who are in His school
and who practice the lessons
which they receive there
are open-handed and large-hearted. (A. McAuslane
D. D.)
God¡¦s blessing upon the means of great importance
As in a course of physic
a diseased man is prescribed to boil
certain midicinabble herbs in running water
and then to drink a quantity of
that water
and so is cured of his disease; and yet we know that it is not the
water
but the decoction or infusion
which cureth the patient: so it is not
the bread that nourisheth
nor the abundance of outward things which enricheth
or contenteth
but the infusion of God¡¦s blessing
which is the staff of life
without which a man may starve for hunger with bread in his mouth
suffer the
extremity of cold with good clothes on his back
and die like the children of Israel
with the flesh of quails in his mouth. (J. Spencer.)
God made the beast of the earth
The animal creation
I.
THAT
THE ANIMAL WORLD WAS CREATED BY GOD.
1. We should regard the animal world with due appreciation. Man has
too low an estimate of the animal world. We imagine that a tree has as much
claim to our attention and regard as a horse. The latter has a spirit; is
possessed of life; it is a nobler embodiment of Divine power; it is a nearer
approach to the fulfilment of creation.
2. We should treat the animal world with humane consideration.
Surely
we ought not to abuse anything on which God has bestowed a high degree
of creative care
especially when it is intended for our welfare.
II. THAT THE
ANIMAL WORLD WAS DESIGNED BY GOD FOR THE SERVICE OF MAN.
1. Useful for business. How much of the business of man is carried
on by the aid of animals. They afford nearly the only method of transit by road
and street. The commercial enterprise of our villages and towns would receive a
serious check if the services of the animal creation were removed.
2. Needful for food. Each answers a distinct purpose toward the life
of man; from them we get our varied articles of food
and also of clothing.
These animals were intended to be the food of man
to impart strength to his
body
and energy to his life. To kill them is no sacrilege. Their death is
their highest ministry
and we ought to receive it as such; not for the purpose
of gluttony
but of health. Thus is our food the gift of God.
III. THAT THE
ANIMAL WORLD WAS AN ADVANCE IN THE PURPOSE OF CREATION. The chaos had been
removed
and from it order and light had been evoked. The seas and the dry land
had been made to appear. The sun
moon
and stars had been sent on their
light-giving mission. The first touch of life had become visible in the
occupants of the waters and the atmosphere
and now it breaks into larger
expanse in the existence of the animal creation
awaiting only its final
completion in the being of man.
IV. THAT THE
ANIMAL WORLD WAS ENDOWED WITH THE POWER OF GROWTH AND CONTINUANCE
AND WAS GOOD
IN THE SIGHT OF GOD.
1. The growth and continuance of the animal world was insured. Each
animal was to produce its own kind
so that it should not become extinct;
neither could one species pass into another by the operation of any physical
law.
2. The animal world was good in the sight of God. It was free from
pain. The stronger did not oppress
and kill the weaker. The instinct of each
animal was in harmony with the general good of the rest. But animals have
shared the fate of man
the shadow of sin rests upon them; hence their
confusion and disorder
their pain
and the many problems they present to the moral
philosopher. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
The animals of the earth as fore runners of man
1. The first signs and
pictures of human life.
2. Its most intimate assistants.
3. Its first conditions. (J. P. Lange
D. D.)
Reflections on the domestic animals
In domestic animals we recognize a very marked token of the
paternal kindness of the Creator. Their value and importance to man cannot well
be estimated. How much do they add to his strength in toil
to his ease and
speed in travelling
and to his sustenance and gratification in food. Even the
dog proffers to us a serious and profitable lesson. ¡§Man
¡¨ said the poet Burns
¡§is the god of the dog. He knows no other
he can understand no other. And see
how he worships him. With what reverence he crouches at his feet
with what
love he fawns upon him
with what dependence he looks up to him
and with what
cheerful alacrity he obeys him! His whole soul is wrapped up in his god; all
the powers and faculties of his nature are devoted to his service
and these
powers and faculties are ennobled by the intercourse. Divines tell us that it
ought to be just so with the Christian; but does not the dog often put the
Christian to shame?¡¨ The ox
also
is to us a living parable. As he slowly
wends his way from the field of toil
at noon
or evening
toward home
how
affecting the remonstrance his moving figure is made to utter--¡§The ox knoweth
his owner
and the ass his master¡¦s crib; but Israel doth not know
My people
do not consider.¡¨ And when he bows his submissive neck to receive the yoke and
go forth to his labour again
how gracious the invitation symbolized by the
willing act--¡§Take My yoke upon you
and learn of Me; for I am meek and lowly
in heart
and ye shall find rest unto your souls. For My yoke is easy
and My
burden is light.¡¨ The sheep
likewise
is a sacred emblem. Were this animal to
repeat all the various truths committed by the Spirit to its symbolism
it
would preach to us a new lesson with every change of situation in which we
beheld it--following after the shepherd--enclosed in the fold--scattered on the
mountain--lying down in green pastures--straying among wolves--borne on the
shepherd¡¦s shoulder--bound before the shearer--separating from the goats--in
these various circumstances
sheep read to us the most solemn and important
truths of the gospel of the Son of God. And the lamb--this is the central
symbol of the Christian system. This innocent and gentle creature is
preeminently the type of Him who was holy
harmless
and undefiled
the Lamb of
God that was slain to take away the sins of the world
in whose blood the
redeemed of heaven have washed their robes and made them white. The horse also
is a chosen figure of inspiration. In the Book of Revelation--that wonderful
portion of the sacred volume--the King of kings
and Lord of lords
is
represented as riding on a white horse; and the armies of heaven as following
Him upon white horses
clothed in fine linen
white and clean
to witness His
victory over all the enemies of truth and righteousness
and to participate in
the final triumphs of His grace. Such is the deeply interesting event
such the
glorious consummation
of which the horse stands forever a symbol and a
remembrancer before his rider. How wise the arrangement that has thus embodied
Divine truth in living forms
that ever move before our view. How kind and
gracious in God our Father thus to constitute¡¨ sheep and oxen¡¨ to be unto us as
priests and prophets
holding forth the Word of life
and
though they see not
the vision themselves
symbolizing the glorious things of Christ and of heaven
to inspire us with the comfort of the most blessed hope. (H. W. Morris
D.
D.)
Beasts
or wild animals
The term beast in the history of this day
as has already been
stated
is employed to designate wild animals
in contradistinction from the
tame
included under the word cattle. Although these are not designed so
immediately or so eminently for the service of man as domestic animals
yet
many
if not most of them
contribute in one way or another to his welfare--some
as game for his sustenance
some by their hides and fur for his clothing
and
all as subjects of interesting and profitable study. It is stated in the Holy
Scriptures concerning the various branches of the human family
that ¡§God
before appointed the bounds of their respective habitations¡¨; this is equally
true of the different tribes of animals
Wise design and kind adaptation stand
forth conspicuously in the arrangement which has assigned to them their several
localities. The hairless elephant
rhinoceros
and tapir are obviously made for
the heat and luxuriance of the Torrid Zone; and it is there they are found. The
camel and the dromedary have been fashioned and constituted with specific
adaptations for the parched and sandy deserts of the tropics; and here
accordingly
they have been located. Advancing to the more temperate regions
we still find all creatures
both domestic and wild
admirably fitted to occupy
the zone given to them for their inheritance. And as we proceed northward
we
discover given to the various animals hardihood of constitution
together with
warmth of covering
increasing with the increasing rigour of the climate
till
we pass within the Arctic circle
and reach the polar bears. Voyagers in those
latitudes tell us that these animals disport in the regions of ice
and revel
in an intensity of cold
which
to man with every contrivance of art for
protection
is almost past endurance
and produces in him diseases which
shortly terminate his existence--that they sit for hours like statues upon
icebergs
where
if we were to take up our position for one half hour
we
should become statues indeed
and be frozen into the lasting rigidity of
death--that they slide in frolic down slopes of snows
which if we were to
touch with our bare hand
would instantly
like fire
destroy its vitality. Who
that contemplates these shaggy creatures of the pole
so constituted as to find
a congenial home amid eternal ice and snow
and to take their frolicsome
pastime amid the bleak and dismal horrors of an arctic night
but must confess
that every creature
by Divine appointment and adaptation
is suited for its
place
and that every place is fitted for its given occupants? (H. W.
Morris
D. D.)
Let Us make man in Our image
after Our likeness
The creation of man
I.
THAT
THE CREATION OF MAN WAS PRECEDED BY A DIVINE CONSULTATION.
1. This consultation was Divine. Held by the Three Persons of the
Ever-Blessed Trinity
who were one in the creative work.
2. This consultation was solemn Man
unlike the rest of creation
is
a being endowed with mind and volition
capable even of rebellion against his
Creator. There must be a pause before such a being is made. The project must be
considered. The probable issue must be calculated. His relation to heaven and
earth must be contemplated.
3. This consultation was happy. The Divine Being had not yet given
out
in the creative work
the highest thought of His mind; He had not yet
found outlet for the larger sympathies of His heart in the universe He had just
made and welcomed into being. The light could not utter all His beneficence.
The waters could not articulate all His power. The stars did but whisper His
name. The being of man is vocal with God
as is no other created object. He is
a revelation of his Maker in a very high degree. In him the Divine thought and
sympathy found welcome outlet. The creation of man was also happy in its
bearing toward the external universe. The world is finished. It is almost
silent. There is only the voice of the animal creation to break its stillness.
But man steps forth into the desolate home. He can sing a hymn--he can offer a
prayer--he can commune with God--he can occupy the tenantless house. Hence the
council that contemplated his creation would be happy.
II. THAT MAN WAS
CREATED IN THE IMAGE OF GOD. Man was originally God-like
with certain
limitations. In what respect was man created after the image of God?
1. In respect to his intelligence. God is the Supreme Mind. He is
the Infinite Intelligence. Man is like Him in that he also is gifted with mind
and intelligence; he is capable of thought.
2. In respect to his moral nature. Man is made after the image of
God
in righteousness and true holiness. He was made with a benevolent
disposition
with happy and prayerful spirit
and with a longing desire to
promote the general good of the universe; in these respects he was like God
who is infinitely pure
Divinely happy in His life
and in deep sympathy with
all who are within the circle of His Being.
3. In respect to his dominion. God is the Supreme Ruler of all
things in heaven and in earth. Both angels and men are His subjects. Material
Nature is part of His realm
and is under His authority. In this respect
man
is made in the image of God. He is the king of this world. The brute creation
is subject to his sway. Material forces are largely under his command.
4. In respect to his immortality. God is eternal. Man partakes of
the Divine immortality. Man
having commenced the race of being
will run
toward a goal he can never reach. God
angels
and men are the only
immortalities of which we are cognizant. What an awful thing is life.
5. In respect to the power of creatorship. Man has
within certain
limits
the power of creatorship. He can design new patterns of work.
III. THAT THE
CREATION OF MAN IN THE DIVINE IMAGE IS A FACT WELL ATTESTED. ¡§So God created
man in His own image¡¨ (Genesis 1:27). This perfection of
primeval manhood is not the fanciful creation of artistic genius--it is not the
dream of poetic imagination--it is not the figment of a speculative philosophy;
but it is the calm statement of Scripture.
1. It is attested by the intention and statement of the Creator. It
was the intention of God to make man after His own image
and the workman
generally follows out the motive with which he commences his toil. And we have
the statement of Scripture that He did so in this instance. True
the image was
soon marred and broken
which could not have been the case had it not
previously existed. How glorious must man have been in his original condition.
2. It is attested by the very fall of man. How wonderful are the
capabilities of even our fallen manhood. The splendid ruins are proof that once
they were a magnificent edifice. What achievements are made by the intellect of
man--what loving sympathies are given out from his heart--what prayers arise
from his soul--of what noble activities is he capable; these are tokens of
fallen greatness
for the being of the most splendid manhood is but the rubbish
of an Adam. Man must have been made in the image of God
or the grandeur of his
moral ruin is inexplicable. Learn:
1. The dignity of man¡¦s nature.
2. The greatness of man¡¦s fall.
3. The glory of man¡¦s recovery by Christ. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
What is the image of God in which man was created?
I. NEGATIVELY.
Let us see wherein the image of God in man does not consist. Some
for
instance
the Socinians
maintain that it consists in that power and dominion
that God gave Adam over the creatures. True
man was vouched God¡¦s immediate
deputy upon earth
the viceroy of the creation. But that this power and
dominion is not adequately and completely the image of God is clear from two
considerations.
1. Then he that had most power and dominion would have most of God¡¦s
image
and consequently Nimrod had more of it than Noah
Saul than Samuel
Caesar than Christ--which is a blasphemous paradox.
2. Self-denial and humility will make us unlike.
II. POSITIVELY.
Let us see wherein the image of God in man does consist. It is that universal
rectitude of all the faculties of the soul--by which they stand
act
and
dispose their respective offices and operations
which will be more fully set
forth by taking a distinct survey of it in the several faculties belonging to
the soul; in the understanding
in the will
in the passions or affections.
1. In the understanding. At its first creation it was sublime
clear
and inspiring. It was the leading faculty. There is as much difference
between the clear representations of the understanding then
and the obscure
discoveries that it makes now
as there is between the prospect of landscape
from a casement
and from a keyhole. This image was apparent--
2. In the will. The will of man in the state of innocence had an
entire freedom to accept or not the temptation. The will then was ductile and
pliant to all the motions of right reason. It is in the nature of the will to
follow a superior guide--to be drawn by the intellect. But then it was
subordinate
not enslaved; not as a servant to a master
but as a queen to her
king
who both acknowledges her subjection and yet retains her majesty.
3. In the passion. Love. Now this affection
in the state of
innocence
was happily pitched upon its right object; it flamed up in direct
fervours of devotion to God
and in collateral emissions of charity to its
neighbour. Hatred. It was then like aloes--bitter
but wholesome. Anger. Joy.
Sorrow. Hope. Fear. The use of this point--that man was created in the image of
God--might be various; but it shall be two fold.
The Divine image in man
It is not too much to say that redemption
with all its graces and
all its glories
finds its explanation and its reason in creation. He who
thought it worth while to create
foreseeing consequences
can be believed
if
He says so
to have thought it worth while to rescue and to renew. Nay
there
is in this redemption a sort of antecedent fitness
inasmuch as it exculpates
the act of creation from the charge of short-sightedness or of mistake. ¡§Let us
make man in our image
¡¨ created anew in Jesus Christ
¡§after the image of Him
that created him.¡¨ Notice three respects in which the Divine image has been
traced in the human.
I. ¡§God is
Spirit
¡¨ was our Lord¡¦s saying to the Samaritan. Man is spirit also. This it is
which makes him capable of intercourse and communion with God Himself.
SPIRITUALITY thus becomes the very differentia of humanity. The man who
declares that the spiritual is not
or is not for him
may well fancy himself
developed out of lower organisms by a process which leaves him still
generically one of them; for he has parted altogether from the great strength
and life of his race.
II. Spirituality
is the first Divine likeness. We will make SYMPATHY the second. Fellow
suffering is not necessarily sympathy. On the other hand
sympathy may be where
fellow suffering is not. Love is sympathy
and God is love. Sympathy is an attribute
of Deity. When God made man in His own likeness
He made him thereby capable of
sympathy. Spirituality without sympathy might conceivably be a cold and
spiritless grace; it might lift us above earth
but it would not brighten earth
itself.
III. The third
feature is that which we call INFLUENCE the other two are conditions of it.
Influence is by name and essence the gentle flowing in of one nature and one
personality into another
which touches the spring of will and makes the
volition of one the volition of the other. It is indeed a worse than heathenish
negation of the power and activity of God
the source of all
if we debar Him
alone from the exercise of that spiritual influence upon the understanding
the
conscience
and the heart of mankind
which we find to be all but resistless in
the hands of those who possess it by His leave. (Dean Vaughan.)
Man in God¡¦s image
The small can represent the great. Is not the sun reflected in the
hues of the smallest flower
and in the greenness of the finest blade of grass?
Yet that sun is distant from our earth ninety-five millions of miles
and is
larger than our earth one hundred thousand times.
I. IN WHAT THE
IMAGE OF GOD UPON MAN CONSISTS.
1. In the possession of moral powers and susceptibilities.
2. In the pure and righteous state of his whole nature.
3. In his relative position toward other terrestrial creatures.
II. GREAT
BLESSEDNESS WAS INVOLVED IN THE POSSESSION OF GOD¡¦S IMAGE.
1. In the possession of the Divine image human nature had within
itself a mirror of God.
2. It led to fellowship with
God.
3. It was a mirror of God to other creatures.
4. It was a mirror in which God saw Himself.
In this was involved--
Reflections:
1. How sadly changed is human nature.
2. How elevated is the Christian.
3. How blessed is God. (S. Martin.)
The image of God in man
In man two widely different elements are blended
of which only
the one could be moulded in the image of God. God is a Spirit: but man is
material as well as spiritual. God ¡§breathed into (man¡¦s) nostrils the breath
of life¡¨: but He had previously ¡§formed (him) of the dust of the ground.¡¨ Man
therefore is like a coin which bears the image of the monarch: when we would
describe the features of that royal likeness
we take no thought of the earthly
material of the metal on which it is impressed.
1. In the first place
then
man bears God¡¦s image
because God gave
him a freewill
by the force of which gift he is entrusted with individual
responsibility
and exercises a sort of delegated power. This freewill was made
separate from that of God
or the gift would not have been complete. But it was
never meant to be independent of that of God
or the gift to a creature would
have been fatal; as indeed man made it
when he started aside into the rebellion
of a self-seeking and isolated will. God is the great First Cause.
2. But what are the next features of God¡¦s image
in addition to
this gift of will? It might resemble mere force committed to some powerful but
lawless body
which could move without the help of sense or sight. Thus the
madman
for instance
retains will with its full originating power. But it
impels him blindly and irrationally; it may impel him to do himself an injury
or to injure those whom he once loved most dearly. And this would be an
instance of will without light. Or again
the thoroughly abandoned man
who is
given over to a sort of moral madness
he too retains the power of will; but it
has lost all moral guidance; it no longer obeys the laws of rectitude; it has
become
by the loss of that guidance
more dangerous
because more mischievous
than even the mightiest of the powers of nature. And this would be an instance
of will without law. To complete our notion of God¡¦s image
therefore
we must
add to the power of will the law of conscience. Whatsoever is right is our
bounden duty
which the strict harmony of our nature enjoins; whatsoever is
wrong must be firmly shunned
as a contradiction to that nature
as a new
discord in the place of harmony
as a new dishonour to the image of God
3. But in the third place; it is not sufficient to have added the
law of conscience
unless we add the light of reason too. For we could imagine
a creature
possessing something like both will and conscience
who might
nevertheless be far less richly endowed than man. The will of such a being
might be unenlightened: the conscience might be no more than a sort of stolid
sensation of mindless and unreasoning fear. The gift of intellect
then
is a
third essential feature in our nature; and a third trace of the image of God.
Our first parents had dominion
for God ¡§endued them with strength by
themselves
and made them according to His image
and put the fear of man upon
all flesh
and gave him dominion over beasts and fowls.¡¨ They had intelligence
for ¡§counsel
and a tongue
and eyes
ears
and a heart gave He them to
understand.¡¨ They had intercourse with God
for ¡§He made an everlasting
covenant with them
and showed them His judgments.¡¨ Now I need scarcely point
out how precisely and accurately this threefold division corresponds with what
we had reached through an altogether different process. It was as an image of
God¡¦s will that man possessed dominion: as an image of God¡¦s mind that he was
capable of knowledge: as an image of God¡¦s moral nature
that he was admitted
to intercourse with God. (Archdeacon Hannah.)
The creation of man in the Divine image
I. WHAT BELONGS
TO THE IMAGE OF GOD
OR TO THE UPRIGHTNESS IN WHICH MAN IS HERE SAID TO BE
CREATED? The principal question here to be considered is
whether the
expressions in the text relate to the nature or to the character of man.
Perfection of original constitution is one thing; perfection of action and of
moral character is a different thing. Now we understand the expressions in our
text to be employed with exclusive reference to the nature of man
to the
essential being and constitution of his powers. We suppose the meaning to be
that God created man with certain spiritual faculties
which are an image or
likeness of what exists in the Maker Himself.
1. We include here
first
reason
or the intellectual powers by
which knowledge is acquired.
2. Intimately connected with these intellectual faculties
is the
power of feeling moral obligation and of recognizing moral law; and we
therefore name this as a second thing embraced in the Divine image
which
belongs to man by creation. If the first is an image of the Divine knowledge
this is an image of the Divine holiness.
3. Still another part of the image of God in the soul is the power
of free will
or the faculty of determining our actions
and so forming our
character. This constitutes the executive power in man
or that by which he
gives being and direction to his actions.
4. We may further include in the Divine image in man the power of
exercising certain affections. There are decisive indications in nature
and
most emphatic declarations in Scripture
that God is compassionate
and loves
His creatures. We are
therefore
justified in regarding the feelings of which
we are capable of love to God
and of love and piety towards other persons
as
still another part of the image of God in the soul.
II. WE INQUIRE
WHETHER THE LANGUAGE OF OUR TEXT OUGHT TO BE UNDERSTOOD OF OUR FIRST PARENTS
MERELY
OR OF MANKIND IN GENERAL? We think it applies essentially (though
possibly with some modification in respect to the original constitution in the
descendants of Adam) to all human beings. Much which we have already said has
in fact
assumed this view; but we shall here state the reasons of it more
fully.
1. The passage in Genesis is most naturally viewed as relating to
the human nature generally
which then began its existence in Adam and Eve.
2. The Scriptures in several places speak of men generally as made
in the image and likeness of God (See Genesis 9:6; James 3:9).
3. We conclude with a few brief remarks.
1. The discussion through which we have passed enables us to see the
ground on which Paul could say of the Gentile nations
who have no written
revelation
that they are a law unto themselves. Endowed with spiritual
faculties which enable them to determine for themselves the main substance of
their duty. Made in image of God; so moral and accountable beings.
2. We see also that natural religion
or the religion which
developes itself out of the conscience
must be the foundation of the religion
of revelation.
3. All men need much and careful instruction. (D. N. Sheldon
D.
D.)
Our ancestors
I. WHEN did God
make man?
1. After He had created the world.
2. After He had enlightened the world.
3. After He had furnished and beautified the world.
II. How did God
make man?
1. Consultation amongst the Persons of the Godhead.
2. Process.
3. Breath of life.
III. WHAT did God
make man?
1. A creature comely and beautiful in his outward appearance.
2. Dignified in his soul.
3. Princely in his office.
4. Probationary in his circumstance.
Concluding reflections:
1. How happy must have been the state of man in Paradise!
2. How keenly would they feel the effects of the fall!
3. How visibly do we see the effects of the fall in our world!
4. How thankful ought we to be for the redemption of the world by
our Lord Jesus Christ! (Benson Bailey.)
The image of God
I. IN WHAT
RESPECTS GOD CREATED MAN AFTER HIS IMAGE.
1. After His natural image.
2. After His political image. Man is God¡¦s representative on earth.
3. After His moral image. This consists in knowledge
holiness
righteousness
and happiness resulting therefrom (Colossians 3:10; Ephesians 4:24).
II. WHETHER MAN HAS
LOST THIS IMAGE OF GOD
IN WHICH HE WAS CREATED AND
IF SO
HOW FAR
AND BY
WHAT MEANS HE HAS LOST IT.
III. WHETHER MAN
MAY
AND MUST RECOVER THIS IMAGE OF GOD HOW FAR
AND BY WHAT MEANS.
1. Man may certainly recover the moral image of God. His ignorance
as to spiritual and Divine things
his unreasonableness and folly
may be
removed
and he may be enlightened with knowledge and wisdom. As to the
necessity of thus recovering the Divine image. Without this we do not learn
Christ aright; the gospel and grace of God do not answer their end upon us
nor
are we Christians (Ephesians 4:21); without this we do not
cannot glorify God
but dishonour Him (Romans 2:23-26); without this
we cannot
be happy here
we cannot be admitted into heaven Hebrews 12:14; Matthew 5:8; 1 John 3:3; Revelation 7:14
Matthew 22:11.; 2 Corinthians 5:3). In order to
recover this lovely image of God
we must look at it
as Eve looked at the
fruit (2 Corinthians 3:18); we must long
for it
must hunger and thirst after it Matthew 5:6); we must exercise faith in
Christ (Acts 26:18)
and in the promises (2 Peter 1:4); and thus approach the
tree of life
and pluck
and eat its fruit; we must pray for the Spirit (Titus 3:5; Ezekiel 36:25; Ezekiel 36:27; 2 Corinthians 3:18); we must read
the word
hear
meditate
etc. (John 8:31-32; John 17:17; 1 Peter 1:22-23; James 1:18); we must use self-denial
and
mortification (Ro Galatians 5:16)
and watchfulness (1 Peter 5:8; Revelation 16:15). (J. Benson.)
Man¡¦s creation and empire
I. MAN CREATED
THE GODLIKE CREATURE. We are justified in emphasizing man¡¦s entrance into the
world as a creation. In the first chapter of Genesis a distinct word is used to
denote three separate beginnings: first
when matter was created; second
when
animal life was created; third
when man was created. Man only approaches the
animal when he is under the control of the spirit that tempted him at the fall.
Man is
however
connected with the earth and the animal. The added mental and
spiritual endowments consummated the likeness of God upon the earth. When
Christ came into the world it was in the same image.
II. THE EMPIRE AND
THE GRANARIES FOR MAN. That kingship which came to man from his likeness to God
he has kept as he has retained the Divine image. Single-handed man was not
equal to a contest with the monsters that filled the deep. The beasts that
roamed the primeval forests could not be conquered
even by the giants who were
on the earth in those days
by sheer strength of arm. The sea
the winds
the
creeping
flying
browsing mammoths have always been man¡¦s master
save as he
used mind and heart to secure his dominion. What
then
makes man the master?
Mind
reason
judgment
like God¡¦s.
III. THE UNFINISHED
DAY. Of each preceding evening and morning God said: ¡§And there was evening and
there was morning
one day
¡¨ but no such record has come to us respecting the
seventh day. This is the Scripture: ¡§And on the seventh day God finished the
work which He had made; and He rested on the seventh day from all His work
which He had made. And God blessed the seventh day
and hallowed it.¡¨ We are
still in that day. (W. R. Campbell.)
The Divine in man
The heathen
recognizing in their own way the spiritual in man
tried to bridge over the chasm between it and the earthly by making God more
human. The way of revelation on the contrary is to make man more godlike
to
tell of the Divine idea yet to be realized in his nature. Nor have we far to go
to find some of the traces of this Divine in human nature.
1. We are told that God is just and pure and holy. What is the
meaning of these words? Speak to the deaf man of hearing
or the blind of light
he knows not what you mean. And so to talk of God as good and just and pure
implies that there is goodness
justice
purity
within the mind of man.
2. We find in man the sense of the infinite: just as truly as God is
boundless is the soul of man boundless; there is something boundless
infinite
in the sense of justice
in the sense of truth
in the power of self sacrifice.
3. In man¡¦s creative power there is a resemblance to God. He has
filled the world with his creations. It is his special privilege to subdue the
powers of nature to himself. He has turned the forces of nature against
herself; commanding the winds to help him in braving the sea. And marvellous as
is man¡¦s rule over external
dead nature
more marvellous still is his rule
over animated nature. To see the trained falcon strike down the quarry at the
feet of his master
and come back
when God¡¦s free heaven is before him; to see
the hound use his speed in the service of his master
to take a prey not to be
given to himself; to see the camel of the desert carrying man through his own
home: all these show the creative power of man
and his resemblance to God the
Creator. (F. W. Robertson
M. A.)
Wherein can the image of God
in a finite creature
consist? To
this question some answer
that the image of God consisted in the superiority
of man¡¦s physical faculties
in the admirable conformation of his body. This
answer is unworthy of our text and God. Is God a material being? Has He a body
in the image of which lie could create man? Others
on hearing the question
answer
that the image of God in man consisted in the dominion which was given
him over all created beings. But can this be the whole of God¡¦s image? Others
again
reply to our question
that the image of God consisted in the faculty of
the understanding with which man is endowed
and which so eminently
distinguishes him from all other creatures. This answer is less remote from the
truth
but it is incomplete. In the fifth chapter of Genesis we find the two
words
image and likeness
employed in a manner calculated to make us
understand their meaning in our text. There it is said
that ¡§Adam begat a son
in his own likeness
after his image
and called his name Seth.¡¨ Now is it not
evident
that these words ascribe to Seth all the qualifies
physical
intellectual
and moral
which his father possessed? And
can we
without doing
violence to the grammar itself
restrain the meaning of these expressions in
our text to a certain superiority by which man is distinguished? We think
then
that we are authorized to extend these words to all that which
constitutes the character of God
with all the restrictions which the finite
nature of man requires. Man resembled his Creator with regard to his
intellectual and moral qualities. Doubtless there are
in God
incommunicable
perfections which belong to His eternal essence; and
indeed
it is for having
arrogated to himself these august perfections
that man unhappily excavated an
abyss of woe beneath his feet. But there are in God moral perfections which He
communicates to His creatures
endowed with an understanding to know
and a
heart to love. In this sense
man was a reflection
feeble
no doubt
and
finite
of the Divinity Himself. He was
St. Paul tells us
created in
¡§righteousness and true holiness.¡¨ But that we might be able still better to
distinguish the traits of this image
God has not contented Himself with merely
giving us an exact description of them in the words which we have just
considered. Bead the Gospels; there is developed before our eyes the life of
one whom the Bible calls the second Adam
one who is designated the image of
God
the express image of the person of God
the image of the invisible God.
What Divine traits does that image bear! What a reflection of the Divine perfections!
What wisdom! What level What devotion! What holiness! There
my brethren
we
clearly behold the being made ¡§after God in righteousness and true holiness
¡¨
of which the apostle speaks. Now see how the image of God in man develops
itself in the idea of the inspired apostle
and in the manifestation of the Son
of God on earth. We too
place some traits of this image in the understanding.
Not
indeed
in the understanding which requires to be ¡§renewed in knowledge
¡¨
because it has forgotten the things which are above
and has lost the knowledge
of the name of its heavenly Father; but in the clear and enlightened
understanding of the first man
created after the image of God; a spiritual
understanding
the reflection of the supreme intelligence
capable of rising to
God
of seeking God
of adoring God in His works
and in all His moral
perfections; an understanding without error and without darkness
possessing a
full knowledge of the author of its being
and all the means of continually
making new progress in that knowledge by experience. Now to know God is life
eternal; it is the perfection of the understanding; it is the image of God. We
do not
however
mean to represent man
created in the image of God
notwithstanding the superiority of his understanding
as a savant
in the
ordinary meaning of that word
nor as a philosopher
or metaphysician: it was
not by the way of reasoning that he arrived at the knowledge of things; he had
no need of such a process. The superiority
even of his understanding
consisted
perhaps
chiefly in its simplicity
its ignorance of what is false
its
inexperience of evil
in that practical ingenuousness
which constitutes the
charm of the unsophisticated character of a child
a character which Jesus
commands us to acquire anew. Always disposed to learn
never presuming upon
itself
plying those around it with questions
listening to their answers with
an entire confidence--such is the child in the arms of its father
such was
Adam before his God
who condescended to instruct him
and whose word was never
called in doubt. The Scripture confirms us in the idea
that this was indeed an
admirable feature of God¡¦s image
when it tells us
that ¡§God made man upright
but that (afterwards
alas!) they sought out many inventions (reasonings)¡¨ (Ecclesiastes 7:29). The Apostle Paul also
countenances this opinion
when
in his tender solicitude for the Christians at
Corinth
who were exposed to the sophistry of a false philosophy
he writes to
them
with an evident allusion to the seduction of our first parents
¡§I fear
lest by any means
as the serpent beguiled Eve through his subtilty
your minds
should be corrupted from the simplicity that is in Christ.¡¨ Finally
Jesus
Christ also establishes it
when
showing us
in this humble and noble
simplicity
this child-like candour
full of openness and confidence
characteristic feature of the children of His kingdom
He addresses to His
still presumptuous disciples this solemn declaration: ¡§Verily
I say unto you
except ye be converted and become as little children
ye shall not enter into
the kingdom of heaven.¡¨ This feature of character leads us to another
which is
inseparable from it. This simplicity in the mind supposes or produces
simplicity in the heart. When an individual is straightforward in thought
he
is straightforward in his actions. Hence
when the Bible tells us that ¡§God
made man upright
¡¨ it employs a word which
in the original language
means
straightness
as
for example
of a way or a line; and to be upright
is to
follow
without deviation
this way
or this line. Now
man created after the
image of God
followed without effort
as by instinct
this way of uprightness.
This feature
so beautiful and so noble
is reproduced in the new man
which
according to the apostle
is ¡§created after God in righteousness
¡¨ that is
in
uprightness of mind and of heart. Finally
let us not forget (and this
consideration includes all that remains for us to say on the image of God in
man)
that this being
¡§created after God in righteousness and true holiness
¡¨
bore in him a heart capable of loving. And what is the feature of His glorious
perfections
that God takes the greatest pleasure in engraving upon His creature
if it be not His love? Is not God love? And shall not he
who bears impressed
upon his whole being the image of God
who places his glory in being loved
be
capable of loving? Yes
lively
deep
powerful affections filled the heart of
the first man
since
even to this day
these affections exercise so great an
influence over us
and are often
without our knowing it
the real motives of
our actions. But in Adam these affections were pure
as his whole being
they
partook of that ¡§true holiness¡¨ which constitutes the image of God. To man
still innocent
to love God was life. But love is an all-powerful principle of
activity
devotedness
and energy. In the first man it must have been the
motive of his devotion to God
the mysterious bond of his intimate communion
with Him
the sure guarantee of his filial obedience
the ineffable charm which
made him find in that obedience all his happiness. So sweet is devotedness to
that which we love! Ah! that servile obedience which makes us tremble before
the law
because the commandment came forth with thunderings from the smoking
summits of Sinai
was unknown in Eden; that tardy
imperfect obedience
which
costs our selfish
grovelling hearts so much
was unknown; it was unknown
because that same love reigned there
which makes the seraph find his happiness
in flying at the will of Him who pours life and felicity over him in an
unceasing stream. Thus
the understanding of man
always enlightened in the
will of God
who spake to His creature as a man speaks to his friend; and the
heart of man
which loving that sovereign will above all things
made him find
liberty in perfect submission and happiness in ready obedience; so that
in
him
thought
will
and affection
all united in one holy harmony
to the glory
of Him that had ¡§created him in righteousness and true holiness.¡¨ (L.
Bonnet.)
Man created in the image of God
I. To inquire
wherein this ¡§image of God¡¨ consisted.
II. To suggest
some useful inferences from the inquiry.
1. In the first place
then
we may venture to affirm that man¡¦s
resemblance to his Maker did not
as some have strangely imagined
consist in
the form or structure of his body
though ¡§fearfully and wonderfully made
¡¨ and
reflecting
as it does in an eminent degree the wisdom and goodness of the Creator.
For with what propriety can body said to be ¡§the image¡¨ of spirit?
2. To suggest some practical inferences from the inquiry which has
been made.
The antiquity of man historically considered
I. The problem of
the antiquity of man has to the historian two stages. In the first
it is a
matter wholly within the sphere of historical investigation
and capable of
being determined
if not with precision
at any rate within chronological
limits that are not very wide
i.e.
that do not exceed a space of two
or three centuries. In the further or second stage
it is only partially a
historical problem; it has to be decided by an appeal to considerations which
lie outside the true domain of the historian
and are to a large extent
speculative; nor can any attempt be made to determine it otherwise than with
great vagueness
and within very wide limits--limits that are to be measured
not so much by centuries as by millennia. The two stages which are here spoken
of correspond to two phrases which are in ordinary use--¡§Historic man¡¨ and
¡§Prehistoric man.¡¨ In pursuing the present inquiry
we shall
first of all
examine the question
to what length of time history proper goes back--for how
many centuries or millennia do the contemporary written records of historic man
indicate or prove his existence upon the earth? The result is
that for the
¡§Old Empire¡¨ we must allow a term of about seven centuries or seven centuries
and a half; whence it follows that we must assign for the commencement of
Egyptian monarchy about the year B.C. 2500
or from that to B.C. 2650. This is
the furthest date to which ¡§history proper¡¨ can be said
even probably
to
extend. It is capable of some curtailment
owing to the uncertainty which
attaches to the real length of the earlier dynasties
but such curtailment
could not be very considerable. The history of man may then be traced from
authentic sources a little beyond the middle of the third millennium before our
era. It is true and safe to say that man has existed in communities under settled
government for about four thousand five hundred years; but it would not be safe
to say that he had existed in the condition which makes history possible for
any longer term.
II. What is the
probable age of ¡§prehistoric man¡¨? for how long a time is it reasonable to
suppose that mankind existed on the earth before states and governments grew
up
before writing was invented
and such a condition of the arts arrived at as
we find prevailing in the time when history begins
e.g.
in Egypt at
the Pyramid period
about B.C. 2600
and in Babylonia about two centuries
later. Professor Owen is of opinion that the space of ¡§seven thousand years is
but a brief period to be allotted to the earliest civilized and governed
community¡¨--that of Egypt; nay
he holds that such a period of ¡§incubation
¡¨ as
he postulates
is so far from extravagant that it is ¡§more likely to prove
inadequate¡¨ for the production of the civilization in question. This is
equivalent to saying that we must allow two thousand five hundred years for the
gradual progress of man from his primitive condition to that whereto he has
attained when the Pyramid kings bear sway in the Nile valley. Other writers
have proposed a still longer term
as ten thousand
fifteen thousand
or even
twenty thousand years. Now
here it must be observed
in the first place
that
no estimate can be formed which deserves to be accounted anything but the
merest conjecture
until it has been determined what the primitive condition of
man was. To calculate the time occupied upon a journey
we must know the point
from which the traveller set out. Was
then
the primitive condition of man
as
seems to be supposed by Professor Owen
savagery
or was it a condition very
far removed from that of the savage? ¡§The primeval savage¡¨ is a familiar term
in modern literature; but there is no evidence that the primeval savage ever
existed. Rather
all the evidence looks the other way. ¡§The mythical traditions
of almost all nations place at the beginnings of human history a time of
happiness
perfection
a ¡¥golden age
¡¦ which has no features of savagery or
barbarism
but many of civilization and refinement.¡¨ The sacred records
venerated alike by Jews and Christians
depict antediluvian man as from the
first ¡§tilling the ground
¡¨ ¡§building cities
¡¨ ¡§smelting metals
¡¨ and ¡§making
musical instruments.¡¨ Babylonian documents of an early date tell
similarly
of
art and literature having preceded the great Deluge
and having survived it.
The explorers who have dug deep into the Mesopotamian mounds
and ransacked the
tombs of Egypt
have come upon no certain traces of savage man in those
regions
which a widespread tradition makes the cradle of the human race. So
far from savagery being the primitive condition of man
it is rather to be
viewed as a corruption and a degradation
the result of adverse circumstances
during a long period of time
crushing man down
and effacing the Divine image
wherein he was created. Had savagery been the primitive condition of man
it is
scarcely conceivable that he could have ever emerged from it. Savages
left to
themselves
continue savages
show no signs of progression
stagnate
or even
deteriorate. There is no historical evidence of savages having ever civilized
themselves
no instance on record of their having ever been raised out of their
miserable condition by any other means than by contact with a civilized race.
The torch of civilization is handed on from age to age
from race to race. If
it were once to be extinguished
there is great doubt whether it could ever be
re-lighted. Doubtless
there are degrees in civilization. Arts progress. No
very high degree of perfection in any one art was ever reached per saltum. An
¡§advanced civilization¡¨--a high amount of excellence in several arts--implies
an antecedent period during which these arts were cultivated
improvements
made
perfection gradually attained. If we estimate very highly the
civilization of the Pyramid period in Egypt
if we regard the statuary of the
time as equalling that of Chantrey
if we view the great pyramid as an
embodiment of profound cosmical and astronomical science
or even as an
absolute marvel of perfect engineering construction
we shall be inclined to
enlarge the antecedent period required by the art displayed
and to reckon it
not so much by centuries
as by millennia. But if we take a lower view
as do
most of those familiar with the subject--if we see in the statuary much that is
coarse and rude
in the general design of the pyramid a somewhat clumsy and
inartistic attempt to impress by mere bulk
in the measurements of its various
parts and the angles of its passages adaptations more or less skilful to
convenience
and even in the ¡§discharging chambers¡¨ and the ¡§ventilating
shafts¡¨ nothing very astonishing
we shall be content with a shorter term
and
regard the supposed need of millennia as an absurdity. There is in truth but
one thing which the Egyptians of the Pyramid period could really do
surprisingly well; and that was to cut and polish hard stone. They must have
had excellent saws
and have worked them with great skill
so as to produce
perfectly flat surfaces of large dimensions. And they must have possessed the
means of polishing extremely hard material
such as granite
syenite
and
diorite. But in other respects their skill was not very great. Their quarrying
transport
and raising into place of enormous blocks of stone is paralleled by
the Celtic builders of Stonehenge
who are not generally regarded as a very
advanced people. Their alignment of their sloping galleries at the best angle
for moving a sarcophagus along them may have been the result of ¡§rule of
thumb.¡¨ Their exact emplacement of their pyramids so as to face the cardinal
points needed only a single determination of the sun¡¦s place when the shadow
which a gnomon cast was lowest. Primitive man
then
if we regard him as made
in the image of God--clever
thoughtful
intelligent
from the first
quick to
invent tools and to improve them
early acquainted with fire and not slow to
discover its uses
and placed in a warm and fruitful region
where life was
supported with ease--would
it appears to the present writer
not improbably
have reached such a degree of civilization as that found to exist in Egypt
about B.C. 2600
within five hundred or
at the utmost
a thousand years. There
is no need
on account of the early civilization of Egypt
much less on account
of any other
to extend the ¡§prehistoric period¡¨ beyond this term. Mere
rudeness of workmanship and low condition of life generally is sometimes
adduced as an evidence of enormous antiquity; and the discoveries made in
cairns
and caves
and lake beds
and kjokkenmoddings are brought forward to
prove that man must have a past of enormous duration. But it seems to be
forgotten that as great a rudeness and as low a savagism as any which the spade
has ever turned up still exists upon the earth in various places
as among the
Australian aborigines
the bushmen of South Africa
the Ostiaks and Samoyedes
of Northern Asia
and the Weddas of Ceylon. The savagery of a race is thus no
proof of its antiquity. As the Andaman and Wedda barbarisms are contemporary
with the existing civilization of Western Europe
so the palaeolithic period of
that region may have been contemporary with the highest Egyptian refinement.
Another line of argument sometimes pursued in support of the theory of man¡¦s
extreme antiquity
which is of a semi-historic character
bases itself upon the
diversities of human speech. There are
it is said
four thousand languages
upon the earth
all of them varieties
which have been produced from a single
parent stock--must it not have taken ten
fifteen
twenty millennia to have
developed them? Now here
in the first place
exception may be taken to the
statement that ¡§all languages have been produced from a single parent stock
¡¨
since
if the confusion of tongues at Babel be a fact
as allowed by the
greatest of living comparative philologists
several distinct stocks may at
that time have been created. Nor has inductive science done more as yet than
indicate a possible unity of origin to all languages
leaving the fact in the
highest degree doubtful. But
waiving these objections
and supposing a
primitive language from which all others have been derived
and further
accepting the unproved statement
that there are four thousand different forms
of speech
there is
we conceive
no difficulty in supposing that they have all
been developed within the space of five thousand years. The supposition does
not require even so much as the development of one new language each year. Now
it is one of the best attested facts of linguistic science
that new languages
are being formed continually. Nomadia races without a literature
especially
those who have abundant leisure
make a plaything of their language
and are
continually changing its vocabulary. ¡§If the work of agglutination has once
commenced
¡¨ says Professor Max Muller
¡§and there is nothing like literature or
science to keep it within limits
two villages
separated only for a few
generations
will become mutually unintelligible.¡¨ Brown
the American
missionary
tells us of some tribes of Red Indians who left their native
village to settle in another valley
that they became unintelligible to their
forefathers in two or three generations. Moffatt says that in South Africa the
bulk of the men and women of the desert tribes often quit their homes for long
periods
leaving their children to the care of two or three infirm old people.
¡§The infant progeny
some of whom are beginning to lisp
while others can just
master a whole sentence
and those still further advanced
romping together
through the livelong day
become habituated to a language of their own. The
more voluble condescend to the less precocious
and thus from this infant Babel
proceeds a dialect of a host of mongrel words and phrases
joined together
without rule
and in the course of one generation the entire character of the
language is changed.¡¨ Castren found the Mongolian dialects entering into a new
phase of grammatical life
and declared that ¡§while the literary language of
the race had no terminations for the persons of the verb
that characteristic
feature of Turanian speech had lately broken out in the spoken dialects of the
Buriatic and the Tungusic idioms near Njestschinsk in Siberia.¡¨ Some of the
recent missionaries in Central America
who compiled a dictionary of all the
words they could lay hold of with great care
returning to the same tribe after
the lapse of only ten years
¡§found that their dictionary had become antiquated
and useless.¡¨ When men were chiefly nomadic
and were without a literature
living
moreover
in small separate communities
linguistic change must have
proceeded with marvellous rapidity
and each year have seen
not one new
language formed
but several. The linguistic argument sometimes takes a
different shape. Experience
we are told
furnishes us with a measure of the
growth of language
by which the great antiquity of the human race may be well
nigh demonstrated. It took above a thousand years for the Romance
languages--French
Italian
Spanish
Portuguese
Wallachian
and Roumansch
or
the language of the Grisons--to be developed out of Latin. Must it not have
taken ten times as longto develop Latin and its sister tongues--Greek
German
Celtic
Lithuanian
Sclavonic
Zend
Sanskrit--out of their mother speech? Nor
was that mother speech itself the first form of language. Side be side with it
when it was a spoken tongue
must have existed at least two other forms of
early speech
one the parent of the dialects called Semitic--Hebrew
Arabic
Syriac
Phoenician
Assyro-Babylonian
etc.
The other bearing the same relation to the dialects of the nomad
races scattered over Central and Northern Asia--the Tungusic
Mongolic. Turkic
Samoyedic
and Finnic--which are all ¡§radii from a common centre
¡¨ and form a
well-established linguistic family. But these three mighty streams
which we
may watch rolling on through centuries
if not millennia
distinct and separate
one from another
are not wholly unconnected. If we trace them back as far as
the records of the past allow
we shall find that ¡§before they disappear from
our sight in the far distance
they clearly show a convergence towards one
common source.¡¨ Widely different
therefore
as they are
both in grammar and
vocabulary
they too must have had a common parent
have been developed out of
a still earlier language
which stood to them in the relation that Latin bears
to Italian
Spanish
and French. But in what a length of time? If the daughter
languages of the Latin were only developed in the space of a thousand years
and Latin
with its sister tongues
required ten or twenty times as long to be
developed out of the primitive Aryan speech
how much longer a time must have
been needed for the formation from one common stock of the primitive Aryan
the
primitive Semitic
and the primitive Turanian types! When from reasoning of
this kind--regarded as valid--the conclusion is deduced
that ¡§twenty-one
thousand years is a very probable term for the development of human language in
the shortest line
¡¨ we can only feel surprise at the moderation of the
reasoner. But the reasoning is invalid on several grounds.
(a) The supposed induction is made from a single instance--the case
of Latin and its daughter tongues. To prove the point
several cases parallel
to that of Latin should have been adduced.
(b) The time which it took for Latin to develop into Italian
Spanish
Wallachian
etc.
assumed to be known
is not known. No one can say
when Italian was first spoken. All that we know is
when it came to be a
literary language. The fact seems to be that the Gauls and Spaniards
even the
provincial Italians
learnt Latin imperfectly from the first
clipped it of its
grammatical forms
corrupted its vocabulary
introduced phonetic changes
consonant with their own habits and organs of speech. Languages nearer to
Spanish and Italian than to classical Latin were probably spoken generally in
Spain and Italy
while Latin was still the language of the capital and of
polite society.
(c) Linguistic development is not
in fact
equal in equal times. On
the contrary
there are periods when changes are slow and gradual
while there
are others when they take place with extraordinary rapidity. English altered
between Chaucer and Shakespeare very greatly more than it has changed between
Shakespeare and the present day. Changes are greatest and most rapid before
there is a literature; consequently
in the early stages of a language¡¦s life.
And they are facilitated by the absence of intercourse and isolation of tribe from
tribe
which is the natural condition of mankind before states have been formed
and governments set up. In the infancy of man linguistic change must almost
certainly have progressed at a rate very much beyond that at which it has moved
within the period to which history reaches back. It is as impossible
therefore
to measure the age of language by the period--supposing it
known--which a given change occupied
as it would be to determine the age of a
tree by the rate of growth noted at a particular time in a particular branch.
The diversities of physical type have also been viewed as indicating a vast
antiquity for man
more especially when taken in connection with supposed proof
that the diversities were as great four thousand years ago as they are now. The
main argument here is one with which history has nothing to do. It is for
physiologists
not for historians
to determine how long it would take to
develop the various types of humanity from a single stock. But the other point
is an historical one
and requires to be considered here. Now
it is decidedly
not true to say that all
or anything like all
the existing diversities of
physical type can be traced back for four thousand years
or shown to have
existed at the date of B.C. 2100. The early Egyptian remains indicate
at the
most
five physical types--those of the Egyptians themselves
the Cushites or
Ethiopians
the Nashi or negroes
the Tahennu or Lybians
and the Amu or
Asiatics. The Egyptians are represented as of a red-brown colour
but their women
as nearly white. They have Caucasian features
except that their lips are
unduly thick. The Ethiopians have features not dissimilar
but are prognathous
and much darker than the Egyptians
sometimes absolutely black. The negroes are
always black
with crisp
curly hair
snub noses
and out-turned lips; but they
are not represented until about B.C. 1500. The Tahennu or Lybians of the North
African coast have features not unlike the Egyptians themselves
but are
fair-skinned
with blue eyes and lightish hair. The Ainu have features like
those of the Assyrians and Jews: they vary in colour
being sometimes reddish
sometimes yellow
and having hair which is sometimes light
sometimes dark. The
diversities are thus considerable
but they are far from equalling those which
now exist. And it may be suspected that each type is exaggerated. As there
cannot have been the difference of colour between the Egyptian men and the
Egyptian women which the monuments represent
so it is to be supposed that in
the other cases the artists intensified the actual differences. The Ethiopian
was represented darker than he was
the Lybian lighter; the negro was given
crisper and bushier hair
a snubber nose
and thicker lips. Art
in its
infancy
marks differences by caricaturing them. We must not argue from
caricatures
as if they had been photographs. We are not obliged
then
to
relegate the entire development of existing physical types to the prehistoric
period
and on that account to give it
as has been proposed
a vast enlargement.
History shows us five types only as belonging to its first period. The rest may
have been developed subsequently.
III. Further
there
are a certain number of positive arguments which may be adduced in favour of
the ¡§juvenility¡¨ of man
or
in other words
of his not having existed upon the
earth for a much longer period than that of which we have historical evidence.
As
first
the population of the earth. Considering the tendency of mankind to
¡§increase and multiply
¡¨ so that
according to Mr. Malthus
population would
excepting for artificial hindrances
double itself every twenty-five years
it
is sufficiently astonishing that the human race has not
in the space of five
thousand years
exceeded greatly the actual number
which is estimated commonly
at a thousand millions of souls. The doubling process would produce a thousand
millions from a single pair in less than eight centuries. No doubt
¡§hindrances¡¨ of one kind or another would early make themselves felt. Is it
conceivable that
if man had occupied the earth for the ¡§one hundred or two
hundred thousand years¡¨ of some writers
or even for the ¡§twenty-one thousand¡¨
of others
he would not by this time have multiplied far beyond the actual
numbers of the present day? Secondly
does not the fact that there are no
architectural remains dating back further than the third millennium before
Christ indicate
if not prove the (comparatively) recent origin of man? Man is
as naturally a building animal as the beaver. He needs protection from sun and rain
from heat and cold
from storm and tempest. How is it that Egypt and Babylonia
do not show us pyramids and temple towers in all the various stages of decay
reaching back further and further into the night of ages
but start
as it
were
with works that we can date
such as the pyramids of Ghizeh and the ziggurat
of Urukh at Mugheir? Why has Greece no building more ancient than the
treasury of Atreus
Italy nothing that can be dated further back than the
flourishing period of Etruria (B.C. 700-500)? Surely
if the earth has been
peopled for a hundred thousand
or even twenty thousand years
man should have
set his mark upon it more than five thousand years ago. Again
if man is of the
antiquity supposed
how is it that there are still so many waste places upon
the earth? What vast tracts are there
both in North and South America
which
continue to this day untouched primeval forests?
IV. The results
arrived at seem to be that
while history carries back the existence of the
human race for a space of four thousand five hundred years
or to about B.C.
2600
a prehistoric period is needed for the production of the state of things
found to be then existing
which cannot be fairly estimated at much less than a
millennium. If the Flood is placed about
B.C. 3600
there will be ample time for the production of such a
state ofsociety and such a condition of the arts as we find to have existed in
Egypt a thousand years later
as well as for the changes of physical type and
language which are noted by the ethnologist. The geologist may add on two
thousand years more for the interval between the Deluge and the Creation
and
may perhaps find room therein for his ¡§palaeolithic¡¨ and his ¡§neolithic¡¨
periods. (G. Rawlinson
M. A.)
The Jewish and the Christian thought of man
I. THE JEWISH
CONCEPTION OF MAN. It involved--
1. A similarity of nature to that of God Himself.
2. Likeness of character to the Divine.
3. A share in Divine authority.
4. Divine interest and attention.
5. Privilege of approach to the Most High.
6. A sense of man¡¦s degradation and misery through sin. The same
heart that swelled with loftiest hope and noblest aspiration
as it felt that
God was its Father and its King
was the heart that filled with tremor and
shame
as it saw the heinousness of its guilt and the depth of its declension.
II. THE
DISTINCTIVELY CHRISTIAN VIEW. What has Christ added to our thought about
ourselves?
1. He has led us to take the highest view of our spiritual nature. A
treasure of absolutely inestimable worth.
2. He has drawn aside the veil from the future
and made that long
life and that large world our own.
3. He has taught us to think of ourselves as sinners who may have a
full restoration to their high estate. (W. Clarkson
B. A.)
The creation of man
I. SOME GENERAL CIRCUMSTANCES
CONNECTED WITH THE CREATION OF MAN. There is something striking--
1. In the manner of his creation.
2. In the period of his creation.
3. The exalted scale in the rank of beings in which he was placed.
4. The perfect happiness he possessed.
II. THE EXPRESS
IMAGE IN WHICH MAN WAS CREATED. ¡§The image of God.¡¨
1. The image of His spirituality.
2. The image of His perfections.
3. The image of His holiness.
4. The image of His dominion.
5. The image of His immortality. ¡§A living soul.¡¨
Application:
1. Let us remember with gratitude to God the dignity He conferred
upon us in creation. ¡§What is man
¡¨ etc. (Psalms 8:4).
2. Let us shed tears of sorrow over the fallen
ruined state of man.
3. Man is still a precious creature
amid all the ruin sin has
produced.
4. In redemption
we are exalted to dignity
happiness
and
salvation.
5. Let us seek the restoration of the Divine image on our souls; for
without this
without holiness
no man can see the Lord. (J. Burns
D. D.)
The Divine image in man
I. LET US
INQUIRE
IN WHAT DID THE DIVINE IMAGE CONSIST?
1. In immortality.
2. Intelligence.
3. Righteousness.
4. Blessedness.
II. NOTICE THE
PAINFUL TRUTH THAT THE DIVINE IMAGE HAS BEEN DEFACED IS MAN.
1. This is seen in the body of man. Disease; death.
2. It is seen more painfully in his soul. God will not dwell in the
heart which cherishes sin.
III. THE PROVISION
MADE FOR RESTORING THE DIVINE IMAGE TO MAN. Christ
the second Adam. (The
Evangelical Preacher.)
Man created in the Divine image
I. THE MORAL
CONSTITUTION OF MAN. Man has sometimes been called a microcosm
a little world
a sort of epitome of the universe. The expression is not without meaning; for
in man unite and meet the two great elements of creation
mind and matter; the
visible and the invisible; the body
which clothes the brute
and the spirit
which belongs to angels. Now
it is a law and property of this outward purl
that it should perish and decay; whilst it is the privilege and designation of
this inward part
that it should be renewed and strengthened day by day. And
this we shall see
as we examine this immaterial part of man¡¦s nature more
closely. Take
for example
the operation of the thinking principle. Although
we often think to a very bad purpose
yet in our hours of waking and
consciousness we always do think. The mind is an ocean of thought
and
like
the ocean
is never still. It may have its calm thoughts
and its tumultuous
thoughts
and its overwhelming thoughts; but it never knows a state of perfect
rest and inaction. Of no material or visible thing could this be affirmed. No
one expects to find amongst the undiscovered properties of matter the power of
thought. Again: we see this with regard to the freedom of moral agency which we
possess; the power we have to follow out our own moral choice and
determination. Man was formed first for duty
and then for happiness; but
without this liberty of action he could not have fulfilled the designation of
his being in either of these respects. I must be capable of choosing my own
actions
and must be capable of determining the objects towards which they
shall be directed
or I could never become the subject either of praise or of
blame. I should be ¡§serving not God
but necessity.¡¨
II. IN SO CREATING
MAN
GOD HAD RESPECT TO CERTAIN MORAL RESEMBLANCES OF HIMSELF.
1. Man¡¦s created bias was towards purity and holiness.
2. Man was created in a condition of perfect happiness. He had a
mind to know God
and affections prompting to communion with Him.
3. And then
once more
we cannot doubt that man is declared to be
made in the image of God
because he was endowed by his Maker with perpetuity
of being
clothed with the attribute of endless life
placed under circumstances
wherein
if he had continued upright
ample provision was made for his
spiritual sustentation
until
having completed the cycle of his earthly
progressions
he should be conveyed
like Enoch
in invisible silence
or like
Elijah
on his chariot of fire
or like the ascending Saviour
in His beautiful
garments of light and cloud
to the mansions of glory and immortality. For
there was the ¡§tree of life in the midst of the garden.¡¨ He was permitted to
partake of that; it was to be his sacrament
his sacramental food
the pledge
of immortal being
the nourishment of that spiritual nature which he had with
the breath of God. Thus man¡¦s chief resemblance to his Maker consisted in the
fact
that he was endued with a living soul--something which was incapable of
death or annihilation. He had an eternity of future given to him
coeval with
the being of God Himself. (D. Moore
M. A.)
Genesis of man
I. THE CREATION
ARCHIVE TWO FOLD (Genesis 1:26-31; if. 5-22).
II. PANORAMA OF
EMERGENT MAN.
III. MAN
GOD¡¦S
IMAGE.
1. Jesus Christ the image of God. He becomes this in and by the fact
of His Incarnation. In Ecce Homo is Ecce Deus.
2. Man the image of Jesus Christ. In the order of time
the Son of
God made Himself like to man; in the order of purpose
the Son of God made man
like to Himself. It was an august illustration of His own saying when
incarnate: ¡§The first shall be last
and the last first¡¨ (Matthew 20:16). Do you ask in what
respect man was made in the image of Christ? Evidently
I answer
in
substantially the same respects in which Christ became the image of God. Thus:
in respect to a spiritual nature: When
Jehovah God had formed the man of dust of the ground
He breathed
into his nostrils the breath of life. The language
of course
is figurative.
Nevertheless it must mean something. What
then
does this inbreathing by the
Creator mean
if not the mysterious communication of Himself--the eternal Air
or Spirit--into man? As Christ
surveyed man-wise
was born of the Spirit in
Nazareth
so man
made in His image
after His likeness
was born of the Spirit
in Eden. Again: a spiritual nature necessarily involves personality; and
personality
at least finite
as necessarily involves what I have called
secular attributes
e.g.
attributes of sensation
cognition
passion
action
etc. All these belonged to Christ; and through these He declared and
interpreted the Father
being in very truth the Word of God
or Deity in
articulation. And the Word has existed from the beginning
being the God-Said
of the creative week. In man¡¦s potencies of whatever kind--moral
intellectual
emotional
aesthetic--whatever power or virtue or grace there may be--in all
this we behold an image of the Lord from heaven. Once more: personality cannot
at least in this world
exist apart from embodiment
or some kind of
incarnation
which shall be to it for sphere and vehicle and instrument. Some
kind of body is needed which
by its avenues and organs
shall awaken
disclose
and perfect character. And as Christ¡¦s body vehicled and organed His
Personality
and so enabled Him to manifest the fullness of the Godhead which
dwelt in Him body-wise
so man¡¦s body was made in the image of Christ¡¦s
even
that body which in His eternal foreknowledge was eternally His. This
then
was
the image in which man was created
the image of Christ¡¦s human Personality
or
Christ¡¦s spirit and soul and body. Man is the image of Christ and Christ is the
image of God; that is to say: Man is the image of the image of God
or God¡¦s
image as seen in secondary reflection.
IV. MAN GOD¡¦S
INSPIRATION (Genesis 2:7). On his body side he sprang
from dust: on his soul side he sprang up with the animals: on his spirit side
he sprang from God. Thus
in his very beginning
in the original makeup of him
man was a religious being. Coming into existence as God¡¦s inbreathing
man was
in the very fact of being Divinely inbreathed
God¡¦s Son and image. Well
then
might man¡¦s first home be an Eden--type of heaven
and his first day God¡¦s
seventh day--even the Creator¡¦s Sabbath.
V. THE PRIMAL
COMMISSION.
1. Man¡¦s authority over nature. It was man¡¦s original commission
humanity¡¦s primal charter. And history is the story of the execution of the
commission
civilization the unfolding of the privileges of the charter.
Wherever civilized man has gone
there he has been gaining
dominion over the fish of the sea
and the fowl of the air
and every living
thing that moveth on the earth
ay
subduing earth itself. See
e.g.
how
he makes the fish feed him
and the sheep clothe him
and the horse draw him
and the ox plough for him
and the fowl of the air furnish him with quills to
write his philosophies and his epics. Again: see man¡¦s supremacy over the face
of Nature; see
e.g.
how he dikes out the ocean
as in Holland; and
opens up harbours
as at Port Said; and digs canals
as at Suez; and explodes
submarine reefs
as in East River; and builds roads
as over St. Gothard; and
spans rivers
as the St. Lawrence; and stretches railways
as from Atlantic to
Pacific; see how he reclaims mountain slopes and heaths and jungles and deserts
and pestilential swamps
bringing about interchanges of vegetable and animal
life
and even mitigating climates
so that here
at least
man may be said to
be the creator of circumstances rather than their creature. Again: see man¡¦s
supremacy over the forces and resources of Nature; see how he subsidizes its
mineral substances
turning its sands into lenses
its clay into endless blocks
of brick
its granite into stalwart abutments
its iron into countless shapes
for countless purposes
its gems into diadems; see how he subsidizes its
vegetable products
making its grains feed him
its cottons clothe him
its
forests house him
its coals warm him. See how he subsidizes the mechanical
powers of nature
making its levers lift his loads
its wheels and axles weigh
his anchors
its pulleys raise his weights
its inclined planes move his
blocks
its wedges split his ledges
its screws propel his ships. See how he
subsidizes the natural forces
making the air waft his crafts
the water run
his mills
the heat move his engines
the electricity bear his messages
turning the very gravitation into a force of buoyancy.
2. But in whose name shall man administer the mighty domain? In his
own name
or in another¡¦s? In another¡¦s most surely
even in the name of Him in
whose image he is made. The Son of God alone is King
and man is but His
viceroy; viceroy because His inspiration and image. Man holds the estate of
earth in fief; his only right the right of usufruct.
VI. CONCLUDING
OBSERVATIONS.
1. Jesus Christ the archetypal Man. Jesus the form
mankind the
figure. See Romans 8:29; Colossians 1:15; Revelation 3:14.
2. Man¡¦s incomparable dignity. His starting point is the Eternal
Infinite One. A genuine coin
stamped in effigy of Kaiser or President
is
worth what it represents. Man
stamped in the effigy of the King of kings and
Lord of lords
is worth
let me dare to say it
what he
represents
even Deity. Little lower than the angels
little lower than Elohim
did Elohim make him (Psalms 8:5). All this explains why this
earth
cosmically so tiny
morally is so vast. Jesus Christ came not to save
the worthless. He came to save Divine imageship: that is to say
all Godlike
potentialities. He came to save Divine imageship itself.
3. Imageship the die of race unity. May it ever be ours to recognize
lovingly every human being
whether Caucasian or Mongolian
as a member of
mankind
and so our kinsman! When all men do this
mankind will not only be the
same as humanity; mankind will also have humanity.
4. We see the secret of man¡¦s coming triumph: it is imageship. Jesus
Christ is the image of God; as such
He is the Lord of all. Mankind is Christ¡¦s
image lost. The Church is Christ¡¦s image restored: as such
she
like her
image
is lord of all. All things are hers; whether Paul
or Apollos
or
Cephas
or the world
or life
or death
or things present
or things to come:
all are hers; and she is Christ¡¦s
and Christ is God¡¦s (1 Corinthians 3:21-23).
5. Would you know how to be restored in the image of God? Then gaze
on the character of Him who is the brightness from His Father¡¦s glory
and the
express image of His Person. Enter into the fellowship of that character. Be
everlastingly closeted with Him in the kinships and intimacies of a perfect
friendship. Lovingly study every feature of that beaming Image (2 Corinthians 3:18). Thus gazing
and thus changed
it matters little what our earthly fate be
whether renown or
obscurity
wealth or poverty
long life or early death. Enough that on the
resurrection morn we shall perceive that as we had borne the image of the
earthly
even of the first man Adam
so henceforth we shall bear the image of
the heavenly
even of the Second Man
the Lord from heaven (1 Corinthians 15:47-49). (G.
D.Boardman.)
The image of God
I. GOD¡¦S DECREE.
God consults with Himself. Complex nature of Deity.
II. MAN¡¦S DIGNITY.
Nearer to God¡¦s own nature than other animals. A moral being.
III. MAN¡¦S
DOMINION. Lessons:
1. Our position of dignity should strengthen our sense of duty.
2. Our relationship to God should encourage us to noble aims.
3. In Jesus Christ man is restored to the image of God and to the
hope of a high and blessed destiny. (W. S. Smith
B. D.)
The vastness of man
¡§Let Us make man in Our image.¡¨ Such is man¡¦s height
and depth
and breadth
and mystery. He has not come from one principle or distinction of
the Divine nature
but out of all principles. Man is the image of the whole
Deity. There is in him a sanctuary for the Father
for the Son
and for the
Holy Ghost. (J. Pulsford.)
The making of man
There is surely no bolder sentence in all human speech. It takes
an infinite liberty with God! It is blasphemy if it is not truth. We have been
accustomed to look at the statement so much from the human point that we have
forgotten how deeply the Divine character itself is implicated. To tell us that
all the signboards in Italy were painted by Raphael is simply to dishonour and
bitterly humiliate the great artist. We should resent the suggestion that
Beethoven or Handel is the author of all the noise that passes under the name
of music. Yet we say
God made man. Here is the distinct assurance that God
created man in His own image and likeness; in the image of God created He him.
This is enough to ruin any Bible. This is enough to dethrone God. Within narrow
limits any man would be justified in saying
If man is made in the image of
God
I will not worship God who bears such an image. There would be some logic
in this curt reasoning
supposing the whole case to be on the surface and to be
within measurable points. So God exists to our imagination under the
inexpressible disadvantage of being represented by ourselves. When we wonder
about Him we revert to our own constitution. When we pray to Him we feel as if
engaged in some mysterious process of self-consultation. When we reason about
Him the foot of the ladder of our reasoning stands squarely on the base of our
own nature. Yet
so to say
how otherwise could we get at God? Without some
sort of incarnation we could have no starting point. We should be hopelessly
aiming to seize the horizon or to hear messages from worlds where our language
is not known. So we are driven back upon ourselves--not ourselves as outwardly
seen and publicly interpreted
but our inner selves
the very secret and mystery
of our soul¡¦s reality. Ay; we are now nearing the point. We have not been
talking about the right ¡§man¡¨ at all. The ¡§man¡¨ is within the man; the ¡§man¡¨ is
not any one man; the ¡§man¡¨ is Humanity. God is no more the man we know than the
man himself is the body we see. Now we come where words are of little use
and
where the literal mind will stumble as in the dark. Truly we are now passing
the gates of a sanctuary
and the silence is most eloquent. We have never seen
man; he has been seen only by his Maker! As to spirit and temper and action
we
are bankrupts and criminals. But the sinner is greater than the sin. We cannot
see him; but God sees him; yes
and God loves him in all the shame and ruin.
This is the mystery of grace. This is the pity out of which came blood
redemption
forgiveness
and all the power and glory of the gospel. We cannot
think of God having made man without also thinking of the responsibility which
is created by that solemn act. God accepts the responsibility of His own
administration. Righteousness at the heart of things
and righteousness which
will yet vindicate itself
is a conviction which we cannot surrender. It is
indeed a solemn fact that we were no parties to our own creation. We are not
responsible for our own existence. Let us carefully and steadily fasten the
mind upon this astounding fact. God made us
yet we disobey Him; God made us
yet we grieve Him; God made us
yet we are not godly. How is that? There is no
answer to the question in mere argument. For my part I simply wait
I begin to
feel that
without the power of sinning
I could not be a man. As for the rest
I hide myself in Christ. Strange
too
as it may appear
I enjoy the weird
charm of life¡¦s great mystery
as a traveller might enjoy a road full of sudden
turnings and possible surprises
preferring such a road to the weary
straight
line
miles long
and white with hot dust. I have room enough to pray in. I
have room enough to suffer in. By-and-by I shall have large space
and day
without night to work in. We have yet to die; that we have never done. We have
to cross the river--the cold
black
sullen river. Wait for that
and let us
talk on the other side. Keep many a question standing over for heaven¡¦s eternal
sunshine. If we would see God¡¦s conception of man
we must look upon the face
of His Son--Him of whom He said
¡§This is My beloved Son
in whom I am well
pleased.¡¨ That is man; that is the ideal humanity. It is useless to look in any
other direction for God¡¦s purpose and thought. (J. Parker
D. D.)
God makes man near to Himself
Earthly sovereigns perpetuate and multiply distinctions between
themselves and their subjects. In Great Britain the monarch is removed from the
rank of the people by princes of the blood royal
dukes
marquises
earls
barons
viscounts
baronets
knights
esquires; and outward appearances
especially on public occasions
are so regulated
as to impress the people with
their own distance; while an audience with the sovereign
or any correspondence
or intercourse is
except to the favoured few
a thing impossible. All this may
be necessary and even useful
where the ruling power is but earthly and human.
In bold contrast with this political policy is the conduct of the supreme
Sovereign--God. The King of kings formed His first earthly subjects with
affinitiesbetween them and Himself most near and intimate. (S. Martin.)
Fellowship with God
The possession of the image of God led to fellowship with God. It
was a means of knowing God
and a power to love God. Looking into themselves they
saw God
and looking out of and beyond themselves they saw God. They were drawn
to God by cords of love
and enjoyed with God the communion of mind and heart.
God was in all their thoughts. God sat enthroned over all their feelings. He
was to them the first
and He the last. God spake
they listened
understood
and believed. God wrought
they saw and rejoiced in His works. They spake to
God
and knew that God heard and understood. They laboured and knew that God
had pleasure in their doings. They walked with God--yea
dwelt in God
and God
in them. Separation from their Creator they knew not. Clouds and darkness were
never about Him. The light of love was always in His countenance. A filial
character was given by likeness to God to the entire religion of our first
parents. Their notion of Deity was the idea of a father--their feelings toward
God were those of children--and their service to God was that of a son and of a
daughter. The inward moulded the outward. Without doubt the very body
sympathized with the spirit
Remorse did not turn their moisture into the
drought of summer. Jealousy did not mock and feed upon their flesh. Sorrow did
not cause their bones to wax old. Grief did not furrow the cheek
or blanch the
hair. Shame brought not confusion on the face. There was no inward fire to
consume--no worm to gnaw and devour. A glowing conscience
a joyful heart
and a
peaceful mind
were marrow to the bones
health to the flesh
and beauty to the
countenance. (S. Martin.)
God manifests Himself through man
By reason of His complacency in His own nature
God desires to
manifest Himself--to express and to make known His own being--to develope His
own character of life. God is also disposed to hold fellowship with His
spiritual universe. Had He preferred solitude
He could have dwelt alone in His
own eternity
or have created merely these material forms which
like a sea of
glass
should have reflected His nature in the cold distance of an unconscious
and inanimate likeness. But willing to hold fellowship with His creatures
determining to make Himself visible
and delighting in His own nature with
infinite complacency--He made man in His own image. This reflection of Himself
was pleasant to God. He rejoiced in this work. He looked upon what He had made
and to Him it seemed good. He ceased to create when He bad made man
and
entered on His sabbath satisfied with this masterwork of His hand. His own
blessedness was increased because livingly reflected. As the artist rejoices
when his metal
or marble
or canvas expresses his ideal--as the poet leaps
with pleasure when his metaphor and rhythm breathethe inspiration of his
heart--as the father glows with gladness to behold in his firstborn boy his own
features--so God delighted in the image of Himself in man. Distance from God!
Distance! Where was distance then? As the shadow to the form--as the fruit to
the tree bough--as the recent born to the mother--man in God¡¦s image was to
God. (S. Martin.)
The Divine image a thought experimentally useful
And of what special importance is this subject to you--Christians?
It is profitable for doctrine
and it is profitable for reproof--it rebukes
that self-conceit
that vanity
that pride
that self-importance which not a
few Christians exhibit. How can men think of themselves more highly than they
ought to think
when they remember that their characteristic should be the
image of God! It is profitable for correction--it may correct the grovelling of
the willingly ignorant
and of the worldly
and of the fleshly
and of the
low-minded; it may correct the false ambition of such as make money
and
earth¡¦s honour their goal--it may correct the self-complacency of the
self-righteous
and the error of those who hold that man has not fallen. And it
is profitable for instruction in righteousness; it saith
Make not orthodoxy
your goal
neither benevolent activity
but make a nature renewed by the Holy
Ghost the mark of the prize of your high calling of God in Christ Jesus. (S.
Martin.)
Man a creation
not an evolution
The theory holds that
in the struggle for existence
the
varieties best adapted to their surroundings succeed in maintaining and
reproducing themselves
while the rest die out. Thus
by gradual change and
improvement of lower into higher forms of life
man has been evolved. We grant
that Darwin has disclosed one of the important features of God¡¦s method. We
deny that natural selection furnishes a sufficient explanation of the history
of life
and that for the following reasons:
1. It gives no account of the origin of substance
nor of the origin
of variations. Darwinism simply says that ¡§round stones will roll down hill
further than flat ones¡¨ (Gray
¡§Natural Science and Religion¡¨). It accounts for
the selection
not for the creation
of forms.
2. Some of the most important forms appear suddenly in the
geological record
without connecting links to unite them with the past. The
first fishes are the Ganoid
large in size and advanced in type. There are no
intermediate gradations between the ape and man.
3. There are certain facts which mere heredity cannot explain
such
for example as the origin of the working bee from the queen and the drone
neither of which produces honey. The working bee
moreover
does not transmit
the honey making instinct to its posterity; for it is sterile and childless. If
man had descended from the conscienceless brute
we should expect him
when
degraded
to revert to his primitive type. On the contrary
he does not revert
to the brute
but dies out instead.
4. The theory can give no explanation of beauty in the lowest forms
of life
such as molluscs and diatoms. Darwin grants that this beauty must be
of use to its possessor
in order to be consistent with its origination through
natural selection. But no such use has yet been shown; for the creatures which
possess the beauty often live in the dark
or have no eyes to see. So
too
the
large brain of the savage is beyond his needs
and is inconsistent with the
principle of natural selection which teaches that no organ can permanently
attain a size as required by its needs and its environment. See Wallace
¡§Natural Selection
¡¨ 838-360.
5. No species is yet known to bare been produced either by
artificial or by natural selection. In other words
selection implies
intelligence and will
and therefore cannot be exclusively natural.
I. UNITY OF THE
HUMAN RACE.
1. The Scriptures teach that the whole human race is descended from
a single pair.
2. This truth lies at the foundation of Paul¡¦s doctrine of the
organic unity of mankind in the first transgression
and of the provision of
salvation for the race in Christ.
3. This descent of humanity from a single pair also constitutes the
ground of man¡¦s obligation of natural brotherhood to every member of the race.
The Scripture statements are corroborated by considerations drawn from history
and science.
Three arguments may be briefly mentioned:
1. The argument from history. So far as the history of nations and
tribes in both hemispheres can be traced
the evidence points to a common
origin and ancestry in central Asia.
2. The argument from language. Comparative philology points to a
common origin of all the more important languages
and furnishes no evidence
that the less important are not also so derived.
3. The argument from psychology. The existence
among all families
of mankind
of common mental and moral characteristics
as evinced in common
maxims
tendencies
and capacities
in the prevalence of similar traditions
and in the universal applicability of one philosophy and religion
is most
easily explained upon the theory of a common origin.
4. The argument from physiology.
(a) The numberless intermediate gradations which connect the
so-called races with each other.
(b) The essential identity of all races in cranial
osteological
and
dental characteristics.
(c) The fertility of unions between individuals of the most diverse
types
and the continuous fertility of the offspring of such unions.
The creation of man
I. MAN WAS THE
LAST OF GOD¡¦S WORKS.
1. He was not made to be in anywise a helper to God in creation.
There is nothing that we see around us
or behold above us
or that we trample
on with our feet
that was created by us. The most insignificant insect that
crawls
the meanest among herbs
had their first origin from the Almighty.
2. But
again
as the order of the universe shows clearly to us that
we had no share either in the formation or design of anything that we see
so
does it lead us to grateful reflections upon God¡¦s goodness and wisdom in our
creation. He did not place our first parents in a void
empty
and unfurnished
dwelling
but He garnished the heavens with light
and clothed the earth with
beauty
ere He introduced into it that creature who should dress and keep it
and be allowed to have dominion over every living thing.
II. THE PECULIAR
DELIBERATION WITH WHICH GOD APPLIED HIMSELF TO THIS HIS NOBLER WORK. ¡§Let Us
make man in Our image
after Our likeness.¡¨ Whence this altered form of
expression? What other view can we take of it
than that it is a token of man¡¦s
greater dignity and higher worth? Should it not excite us to soar above our
fallen state--to rise superior to the ruin in which we find ourselves
involved--to recollect the glory of our first creation
and the honour which
was put upon us in this deliberate purpose and counsel of the several persons
of the blessed Trinity in our creation.
III. MAN WAS
CHEATED IN GOD¡¦S IMAGE
AFTER HIS LIKENESS. Let us
in concluding the subject
consider what practical improvement may be derived from it. Is God our Maker
and shall we not worship and adore Him? Again
ought not the image of God in
man to be prized above all beside? The body decays and moulders into dust: the
spirit is indestructible. Whence is it that this dying body exercises our chief
care and thought
while the immortal spirit is neglected and forgotten? Shall
the tongue be allowed to utter lies
seeing that it is given us by the God of
truth? Shall we curse man
that is made after the image and likeness of God?
Again
are we distinguished from the beasts that perish by the noble gift of
reason
and understanding
and conscience
and shall we allow the members of
the body to ¡§usurp a wretched dominion over us? (H. J. Hastings
M. A.)
Man created in God¡¦s image
1. Whatever may be the
difficulties this text of ours presents to expositors and divines
the main
fact it embodies and sets forth is so clearly expressed as to exclude the
possibility of a difference of opinion respecting it. And this fact is none
other than that our first parents were created by God
and this in His image
and likeness. This plain statement of Holy Writ
that man has been created
is
nevertheless considered by many scientists of our days as being utterly
erroneous and untenable.
2. It must have been a most solemn moment in the history of creation
when
at the close of it
God undertook to create man
who was to complete and
crown His marvellous six days¡¦ work. What this world would have been without
man we can easily picture to ourselves when we read the descriptions by
explorers and travellers of those parts of our globe never inhabited or
cultivated by man. We know that without man¡¦s care and attention many things in
nature would have gradually disappeared
others again would not have developed
to such a state of perfection as they have attained to. Besides this
nature
without man
who combines in himself the material and spiritual
the natural
and supernatural
and thus forms a reasonable and necessary link between nature
and its Creator
would have lacked a high and noble aim worthy of the great Creator.
3. God created man in His image
after His likeness. (A. Furst
D. D.)
Love in the creation of man
In man animal organization is carried to its highest. That which
in the quadruped is a comparatively insignificant member becomes in man the
hand
so wonderful in its powers
so infinitely versatile in its applications.
That tongue
which the rest of animal creation possess
but which the highest
among them use only for inarticulate signals
becomes in him the organ of
articulate speech
so marvellous in its construction
and its uses. And of the
same rich bestowal of the best of God¡¦s gifts of life and life¡¦s benefits on
man
many other examples might be
and have been given. But it is not in man as
the highest form of organized animal life that we are to seek for
exemplification of the declaration in my text. His erect form
his expressive
eye
his much-working hand--his majesty in the one sex
and beauty in the
other--these may excite our admiration
and lead us to praise Him who made us;
but in none of these do we find the image of God. God is without body
parts
or passions. He is above and independent of all organized matter: it sprung
from the counsel of His will
it is an instrument to show forth His love and
praise
but it is not
and cannot be
in His image. But let us advance higher.
God bestowed on man
as on the tribes beneath him
a conscious animal soul. And
here let me remind you that I follow
as I always wish to do
that Scriptural
account and division of man
according to which the soul
the £r£o£q£b̀ of the New Testament
is that thinking and feeling and prompting
part of him
which he possesses in common with the brutes that perish; and
which I will call for clearness
his animal soul. Now here again
though he
possesses it in common with them
God has given it
in him
a wonderfully
higher degree of capability and power. The merely sentient capacities of the
animal soul in the most degraded of men are immeasurably above those of the
animal soul in the most exalted of brutes
--however he may be surpassed by them
in the acuteness Of the bodilysenses. And again
in speaking of man
we cannot
stop with these animal faculties. To the brute
they are all. It is obvious
then
that we must not look for God¡¦s image in man in this his animal soul
because this is confessedly not his highest part; because it is informed and
ennobled by something above it: moreover
because it is naturally bound to the
organization of his material body. And this point is an important one to be
borne in remembrance. It is not in our mental capacities
nor in any part of
our sentient being
that we can trace our likeness to God; whenever we speak of
any or of all of these in the treatment of this subject
we must look beyond
them
and beyond the aggregate of them
for that of which we are in search.
What
then
is that part of man at which we have been pointing in these last
sentences? that soul of his soul
that ennobler of his faculties
that whose
acknowledged dignity raises him far above the animal tribes
with whom he shares
the other parts of his being? Let us examine his position
as matter of fact.
By what is he distinguished from all other animals
in our common speech and
everyday thought? Shall we not all say that it is by this--that whereas we
regard each animal as merely a portion of animatedmatter
ready to drop back
again into inanimate matter
the moment its organization is broken down--we do
not thus regard ourselves or our fellow men
but designate every one of them as
a person
a term which cannot be used of any mere animal? And is it not also
true
that to this personality we attach the idea of continuous
responsibility--of abiding praise or blame? To what is this personality owing?
Not to the body
however perfect its organization; not to the animal soul
however
wonderful its faculties; but to the highest part of man--his spirit. And here
it is that we must look for man¡¦s relation to God. God is a Spirit; and He has
breathed into man a spirit
in nature and attributes related to Himself: which
spirit rules and informs
and takes up into itself
and ennobles
as we have
seen
his animal soul. This spirit is wonderfully bound up with the soul and
the body. The three make up the man in his present corporeal state--but the
spirit alone carries the personality and responsibility of the man. The body
with its organization and sentient faculties
is only a tent wherein the spirit
dwells; itself is independent of its habitation
and capable of existing
without it. The spirit of man makes the essential distinction between him and
the lower animals. His spirit
his divine part
that Whereby he can rise to and
lay hold of God
was made in the image of God. And this leads us to the second
division of our inquiry
How was man¡¦s spirit created in the image of God? What
ideas must we attach to these words
¡§the image of God¡¨? To this question but
one answer can be given
and that in simple and well-known words. God is love:
this is all we know of His essential character. He Who is Love
made man
man¡¦s
spirit
after His own image. That is
He made man¡¦s spirit
love--even as He is
love. In this consisted the perfection of man as he camefrom the hands of His
Creator--that his whole spirit was filled with love. Now what did this imply?
clearly
a conscious spirit; for love is the state of a knowing
feeling
conscious being. What more? as clearly a spirit conscious of God; knowing Him
who loved it
and loving Him in return. Faith is the organ by which the spirit
reaches forth to God. We never can repeat or remember too often
that faith is
¡§appropriating belief¡¨; not belief in the existence of God as a bare fact
distant and inoperative
but belief in Him as our God--the God who loves
us--the God who seeks our good--the God to whom we owe ourselves--the God who
is our portion andour exceeding great reward. And it is essential to faith
that we should not
speaking strictly
know all this--not have hold of every
particular detail of it--not master the subject
as men say; this would not be
faith
but knowledge. We are masters of that which we know; but we are servants
of that which we believe. And therefore man
created in the image of God
loving God
dependent on God
tending upwards to God
is created in a state of
faith. By this faith his love was generated--by believing God as his God--by
unlimited trust of His love
and uninterrupted return of that love. And O what
does not this description imply
that is holy
and tending to elevate and bless
man? ¡§Love
¡¨ says the apostle
¡§is the bond of perfectness¡¨; and the same
command of our Lord
which we read in one place of the Gospel
¡§Be ye perfect
even as your Father in heaven is perfect¡¨; in another runs
¡§Be ye merciful
¡¨ i.e.
loving
¡§even as your Father is merciful.¡¨ One remark more. On this image
of God depends the immortality of man¡¦s spirit; not on its own nature
as some
have dreamed. As it had a beginning
so it might have an end. It can only be
immortal by being united to Him who liveth forever. God¡¦s love called into
being those who were in its own image
kindred to itself
bound to itself by
love; how can we conceive that love annihilating again such kindred objects of
its own good pleasure? And this immortality is not removed by sin: for it lies
at the root of the race--is its essential attribute
not an accident of its being.
(Dean Alford.)
The state of innocence
The name of Adam suggests to us at once the estate from which the
human race has fallen
the cause of that fall
the vast forfeit that one man
made to God; and naturally awakens in our own minds questions as to our lost
inheritance. Would Adam have died if he had never fallen? If he had lived
would he have continued in paradise
or been translated into heaven? What was
his condition in paradise? Was it one of probation and of interior sufferings
dependent on such a state
or was it one of entire freedom from all such trial?
And lastly (and this is most important in such probation)
was Adam indued with
a supernatural power
or did he simply depend on the gifts of his original
creation? To these four questions I will append one brief inquiry in addition.
Had our first parents a claim to eternal happiness by the right of their
original creation
or in virtue of some covenant made with them by God?
1. With regard then to the first of the above questions
a very
slight examination of Holy Scripture will assure us that Adam would not have
died in an unfallen state. As is always the case in the direct intercourse of
God with His creature
a covenant was made between the two
the terms of which
were clearly defined. ¡§Of the tree of knowledge of good and evil thou shalt not
eat; for in the day thou eatest thereof thou shalt surely die¡¨; and the woman
in stating the terms of the covenant
says
¡§God hath saith
Ye shall not eat
of it
neither shall ye touch it
lest ye die.¡¨ Now these propositions clearly
involve the power of inversion
and imply that
in the event of their not
eating the forbidden fruit
they shall live and not die; that is
their death
was simply and only dependent on breach of the covenant. The same point is clearly
ascertained by a comparison of 1 Corinthians 15:1-58 and Romans 5:1-21
both with the separate parts
of each and one with another.
2. I will now approach the second branch of the subject
namely
the
question
whether Adam would have remained
had he not fallen
an
inhabitant of paradise; or been translated into the immediate presence of God
in heaven. There seem to be four especial reasons
amongst many others
for
concluding that the latter would have been the case; for
in the first place
it is apparent that in the case of all covenants
such as those which God made
with man
there is a punishment annexed to the breach of the terms of such
covenant
and a reward annexed to their fulfilment; and inasmuch as this
punishment would involve a worse condition for the fallen party than the one
which he occupied at the period of the ratification of the covenant; so
on the
other hand
a superior condition is the reward of the fulfilment of those
terms. Now the fall of Adam at once brought upon him the loss of paradise
that
is
the inferior condition; and
by parity of reasoning
had he not fallen but
endured his probation
it would have secured to him translation to heaven
itself
or a superior condition. But I pass on to the second reason on which I
base my belief that Adam would have been eventually translated to heaven. He
was clearly possessed of the perfect power of self-will; he had vast and
manifold opportunities of exercising it; he was placed in the immediate
presence of a piercing temptation; be daily passed the tree of knowledge on his
visit to the tree of life. So acute was that temptation
that in spite of the
continual presence of
Jehovah
of the purity of the nature hitherto innocent
of the
innate image of God
be exercised that power of free will
and he fell. For
what could all of the powers have been given him? and why should he have been placed
in such a position
unless some great attainment beyond what he at that moment
enjoyed was to be placed within his grasp? To imagine otherwise would be
inconsistent with the whole analogy of God¡¦s providence. But
thirdly
I spoke
above of the external support which was continually necessary from the Divine
Being for the preservation of Adam¡¦s natural life; a state of continued
exertion is unnatural to the Deity; a state of repose is His true condition;
consequently we cannot imagine but that the first Adam was eventually to have
been placed in a position in which continued life was natural to him. Even the
daily visit of the Almighty to the garden of Eden implied a transitory
and not
a permanent condition. But
fourthly
though the fact of sinning involved death
to the natural body
it by no means follows that the absence of sin leaves that
natural body in the same condition
but rather we should expect it would tend
to elevate it
as much as the fall into sin depressed it.
3. I will now pass on to the third head
the moral condition of our
first parents in Eden. There is a popular impression
not unfrequently given
children and ignorant persons
that our first parents were in a state of entire
freedom from any kind of suffering. Now the presence of an object highly
desirable to the eye and the mind
while the moral agent is fully possessed of
the power of free will and yet under a strong bias towards a different
direction from that desire
in itself implies a condition of very considerable
mental suffering
and in this condition clearly our first parents were placed
for we are distinctly told that the tree of the knowledge of good and evil was
in the first place highly desirable to the eye; and secondly
to the mind
inasmuch as it imparted the keenest knowledge of right and wrong; consequently
no misapprehension could be greater than that our first parents were without
probation
and all its attending trials; nay more
we are bound to consider how
intense must have been the desire after knowledge
a thing in itself so
innocent and elevated
in so sublime a creature as Adam was
fresh from the
hands of the Creator
and having as yet no bias in favour of wickedness;
besides which
some exquisite external beauty seems to have arrayed the tree of
knowledge
which made it the more fascinating to Adam and Eve
as we gather
from the terms that it was desirable to the eye. From all this it is clear Adam
was in a state of very keen probation.
4. With what power did Adam approach the scene of his temptation?
Was it with the original power of his creation or some supernatural gift of the
Spirit? Surely with the latter. (E. Monro
M. A.)
Proofs of the Divine in man
To this day no fact in natural history remains more conspicuous
than the strong contrast betwixt man and every other animal
in their relations
to nature--particularly in their power to master and utilize the forces of
nature. Once man appears upon the globe
no matter how he came there
he reacts
upon his environment in a way that is possible to no other organism. In popular
language
he is not the mere ¡§creature of circumstances¡¨ in the same sense in
which that may be affirmed of other creatures. To a large and growing degree
he makes his own world--modifying
conquering
counteracting
utilizing the forces
of nature
with its living productions
to his own ends. This process
which
the venerable book before us calls ¡§subduing¡¨ the earth
and which it regards
as a special task assigned to our human family
is due to two faculties
peculiar to man. The first is the power to store up his observations upon
nature and compare them
until by degrees the laws according to which her
forces operate come to be understood: the result of this power is science.
Next
is the power to recombine matter in fresh combinations so as to utilize
the forces of nature for new ends of his own: the results of this we term the
Mechanical Arts. Neither of these two faculties exists in any other animal
save in the most rudimentary form. These two in combination have given birth to
human civilization. Man enlarges his power from day to day
while the very ball
on which he is a pigmy resident seems to contract itself in his grasp. Space
and time are nearly annihilated: seas almost cease to divide; the engineer
alters even the face of the land; matter becomes less and less our enemy
more
and more our minister. By science and by art
we are entering upon a veritable
¡§dominion¡¨ over this globe which God has given us to possess
and a crown is
set upon man¡¦s head of ¡§glory and honour.¡¨ I do not pause to insist upon the
strange foresight exhibited in these ancient words
or how strangely the
destiny of our race which was thus foreshadowed in the dim dawn of history has
come to be fulfilled in our time. Let me rather ask you to notice how revelation
at its outset is not content to recognize this mastery of man over the rest of
nature as his preeminent function--it undertakes already to explain it. It
assigns a reason for it. It finds that reason in the constitution of human
nature itself
viz.
in man¡¦s dual nature
and especially in his resemblance on
one side of his two-fold being to his Creator. ¡§God made man in His own
likeness.¡¨ Now
to do justice to this theory
accounting for man¡¦s supremacy
and power over nature
we must bear in mind that when it assigns to man a dual
origin it is in order to correspond with the dual constitution which he
possesses. In the picturesque and poetic style of primitive thinkers
man came
in part from the ¡§dust of the ground
¡¨ and in part from ¡§the breath of God.¡¨ In
other words
he is on one side of his being a mundane product
fashioned
or
more probably evolved
out of material nature
under the operation of the same
biological laws which account for the origin of other species on the globe; but
on another side he is something more than that
a spiritual being possessed of
a different order of life from that which we find in other species
a life
which natural evolution fails to account for. The truth of that statement
depends on facts which lie outside the sphere of biology as one of the physical
sciences--lie in the region of metaphysics and of religion. They must justify
themselves to other observation than that of the five senses. Nay
we may go
further and say: So long as there remains a class of facts in human
consciousness
of whose origin biology can give no account--facts
for example
like the sense of duty
the instinct of worship
the feeling of responsibility
the desire to pray
or the yearning after immortality--so long is it only
scientific to postulate like Scripture a second origin for man¡¦s nature. The
dual constitution of this exceptional creature
so long as it cannot be
resolved into unity
calls for a dual cause to account for it. If the breath of
the beast
and of the animal life in man too
goeth downward
¡§returning to the
earth as it was
¡¨ shall not the spirit of man go upward
¡§returning to God who
gave it¡¨? So much as man possesses in common with the brutes
comes from ¡§the
dust of the ground¡¨--that physical science will explain to us. So much as
separates man from the brutes and makes him a scientific
inventive
responsible
and religious animal--this demands another explanation. Can we
find a better than the old one--¡§God breathed into man the breath of life
¡¨ or
¡§God created man in His own image¡¨? I do not claim this scriptural theory of
man¡¦s spiritual origin as a result of the modern science of anthropology. On
the contrary
I believe it to be a revelation. At the same time
the facts seem
to call for some such extra-physical cause; and so far
nothing equally good
even as a working hypothesis has been discovered. The spiritual nature of man
is a fact
as I have said
both of metaphysics and of religion: and neither
metaphysics nor religion has yet been swallowed up (like the magicians¡¦ rods)
by physical science. It was not along the road of metaphysical speculation
however
that the Hebrews reached the great fact that man is a spiritual being
akin to his Creator. That road was travelled by the Greek mind. St. Paul found
in Greek poetry traces of the same truth; and Greek poetry had learned it from
Greek philosophy. That ¡§we are the offspring of Zeus¡¨ was the result of
observing human nature on its intellectual and ethical side rather than on its
religious. But the Hebrews were not a speculative
they were preeminently a
religious
people: and when they said
man is akin to Jehovah and wears His
likeness
they meant that they were profoundly conscious through their own
religious experience of having much in common with a personal God. It was by
their devotional instincts
first and chiefly
and by the spiritual fellowship
they were conscious of enjoying with the Living Object of their worship
that
the great Hebrews
like Moses
David
Isaiah
or Paul
realized man¡¦s kinship
with the Eternal
in spite of those obvious ties which link him as an organism
to brute life upon the globe. Unquestionably this is
if one can attain it
the
surest demonstration of all. The religious man who
in his worship and in the
inward crises of his experience
finds that he can fling himself forth upon the
unseen
and
in the darkness
where sense avails no longer
can touch One who
is a real person like himself--can exchange with that awful invisible One
personal confidences and affections
can ask and receive
can love and be
loved
can lean and be upheld; he knows with certainty that he is born of God
and akin to God. To be conscious from day to day of an interior life
utterly
apart from that of sensation
to which life God forms the ever-present conditioning
environment
just as nature surrounds and conditions my animal life--this is to
be as sure that God is
and that my spirit is kindred with His
as I am sure
that nature is
and that my organism corresponds to it. No one who actually
leads this super sensuous life of personal intercourse with God will ask or
care for any lower proof that man¡¦s spirit wears God¡¦s likeness. But although
the religious experience of mankind be the leading proof that we are made in a
Divine likeness
it is far from being the only one. From man religious I fall
back on man scientific
and inquire if even his achievements do not imply that
he is akin to his Maker. Could man be the student and master of nature that he
is
were he not in some real sense intellectually akin to nature¡¦s Maker? Does
not the dominion which he is come to wield through science over physical forces
argue in favour of that anthropology of Genesis which says
God¡¦s own breath is
in him. The great masters of science tell us that they experience a very keen
intellectual delight in tracing out the hidden unity of forces and of the laws
of force by which this vast complex world is reduced to simplicity. It is not
from the observation of isolated facts that this intellectual pleasure springs.
It arises when the observer becomes aware of something more than a crowd of
isolated facts. Of what more? Of some relationship binding facts
together--binding together whole classes of facts; as
for example
of an
identical force at work in widely sundered departments of being
or of
correlated forces; of a type-form running through large families of organisms
underlying their diversities; of universal laws creating cosmical order amid
such a multiplicity of details. The studious mind becomes aware of an ordering
designing Mind. The thought with which God began to work leaps up anew for the
first time after all these intervening cycles of dead material change
leaps up
in a kindred mind. The dead world knew not what its Maker meant
as change
succeeded change
and race was evolved out of race
and cycle followed cycle;
but I know. Across it all
we two understand each other--He
and I His child.
Is not science a witness to the likeness of God in the mind of man? But I
cannot dwell on this
for I should like to suggest in a word how the Divine
image in man further reveals itself when
from being a student of nature
he
goes on to be its imitator. The arts are
one and all of them
so many
imitations of nature
that is
of the Divine working upon matter. For example
we discover the dynamical laws of matter
and at once set about imitating their
natural applications in our mechanics. We discover the laws of chemical
affinity and combination; and we set about bringing into existence such
combinations as we require
or resolving compounds into their elements
at our
pleasure. We discover the laws of electrical force
and straightway we proceed
to utilize it as a motor or a light. In short
we have no sooner learnt His
method from the Author of nature (which is the task of science) than we try to
copy it and become ourselves workers
makers
builders
designers
modellers
just like Himself
only on our own reduced and petty scale. Thus our artificial
products
like our science
bears witness to the ancient word: ¡§There is a Spirit
in man; and the breath of the Almighty giveth him understanding.¡¨ Here
therefore
I return to the point item which I set out. Along this two-fold
road
of science
which traces out the thoughts of God; and of art
which
imitates His working in obedience to known laws
man fulfils his destined
function according to the ancient oracle of Genesis. He ¡§subdues the earth¡¨ and
wins dominion over it. He is the solitary creature on earth who even attempts
such a function. He is fitted for it by his exceptional nearness to
and
likeness to
the Creator. He can be the student and the copyist of God¡¦s works
because he was made in the image of God. Just in proportion as he realizes this
godlike lordship over the globe
with its dead and living contents--a lordship based
on his deciphering and sharing the Creator¡¦s thoughts--in that proportion does
he approach the lofty position which Scripture assigns to him
and in which
Scripture recognizes his crown of glory and honour. But ¡§we see not yet all
things put under him.¡¨ During the long ages past it has been merely a faint
shadow of royalty man has enjoyed. In the main
natural forces have mastered
him. So they do still over a great portion of the earth. Science and art in
this late age of man certainly seem to sweep rapidly to their goal
winning and
recording year by year victories such as were never seen before.
Notwithstanding
men are still far from satisfied
and complain that the
physical ills of life and of society are far from overcome--all things far from
being put under man¡¦s feet. What is to be the future condition of humanity
its
final condition
in relation to nature? Is its lordship to grow much more
perfect than we see it? Shall nature ever yield up all her secrets
or stoop to
serve our welfare with all her forces? I know nothing that pretends to answer
such inquiries save Christianity. And her answer is: We see Jesus
sole and
perfect type of man¡¦s likeness to God
Representative and Forerunner of
humanity redeemed; and Him we see already exalted to an ideal height of mastery
over nature
crowned with the ancient royalty promised to our race
Head over
all
with the world beneath His feet. (J. O.Dykes
D. D.)
Care for the body
If one should send me from abroad a richly carved and precious
statue
and the careless drayman who tipped it upon the sidewalk before my door
should give it such a blow that one of the boards of the box should be wrenched
off
I should be frightened lest the hurt had penetrated further
and wounded
it within. But if
taking off the remaining hoards and the swathing-bands of
straw or cotton
the statue should come out fair and unharmed
I should not
mind the box
but should cast it carelessly into the street. Now
every man has
committed to him a statue
moulded by the oldest Master
of the image of God;
and he who is only solicitous for outward things
who is striving to protect
merely the body from injuries and reverses
is letting the statue go rolling
away into the gutter
while he is picking up the fragments
and lamenting the
ruin of the box. (H. W. Beecher.)
Man made in the image of God
1. It is the only basis of
revelation.
2. It is a rational basis of the Incarnation.
3. A rational basis for the doctrine of regeneration by the Holy
Spirit.
4. The foundation of those glorious hopes that are set before us in
the New Testament. (M. Gibson
D. D.)
The defaced image
But as the image of a sovereign is effaced from old coins; or as
the original expression is lost from the old figure-head on the exposed
building; or as ¡§decay¡¦s effacing fingers¡¨ soon destroy all beauty from the
dead body; so sin speedily and effectually spoiled
or obliterated
the moral
image of God from the soul of man. At Bournemouth I lately noticed some
stunted
misshapen shrubs
which were neither useful nor ornamental
and which
were a degenerate growth of the fine trees abounding in that neighbourhood
or
of the yet finer forests of fir in Norway. So what a contrast there is between
the lowest and the highest trees of men around us; and between the highest types
now and what man was at first. (H. R. Burton.)
Man in God¡¦s kingdom
The king of Prussia
while visiting a village in his land
was
welcomed by the school children of the place. After their speaker had made a
speech for them he thanked them. Then taking an orange from a plate
he asked:
¡§To what kingdom does this belong?¡¨ ¡§The vegetable kingdom
sire
¡¨ replied a
little girl. The king took a gold coin from his pocket and
holding it up
asked: ¡§And to what kingdom does this belong?¡¨ ¡§To the mineral kingdom
¡¨ said
the girl. ¡§And to what kingdom do I belong
then?¡¨ asked the king. The little
girl coloured deeply
for she did not like to say
¡§the animal kingdom
¡¨ as she
thought she would
lest his majesty should be offended. Just then it flashed
into her mind that ¡§God made man in His own image
¡¨ and looking up with a
brightening eye
she said
¡§To God¡¦s kingdom
sire.¡¨ The king was deeply moved.
A tear stood in his eye. He placed his hand on the child¡¦s head and said
most
devoutly
¡§God grant that I may be accounted worthy of that kingdom!¡¨
Have dominion
Man¡¦s dominion over the lower animals
I.
THIS
DOMINION GOD HAS MADE TO ARISE FROM THAT MENTAL SUPERIORITY WHICH CONSTITUTES
MAN¡¦S DISTINCTION AND GLORY.
1. The power of man is in his mind.
2. The benefit and extent of man¡¦s dominion is made to depend on the
moral as well as the intellectual nature with which he was originally endowed.
3. As God has thus fitted man
by his superior nature
for dominion;
so
on the other hand
He has given to the inferior animals a corresponding
disposition to acknowledge man¡¦s superiority.
4. Thus the comfort of man is evidently promoted when this dominion
is wisely and justly exercised
according to the original design of the
Creator.
¡§The hay appeareth
and the tender grass showeth itself
and herbs
of the mountains are gathered: the lambs are for thy clothing
and the goats
are for the price of the field.¡¨ But the dominion of man when justly exercised
is a mean of comfort also to the animals who are connected with him. Living in
our society and neighbourhood
they become the objects of our care. Attached to
our persons and homes
they feel pleasure in our service. They thus partake of
our provision
and enjoy the advantage of our foresight.
II. THE MANNER IN
WHICH OUR DOMINION OVER THE INFERIOR ANIMALS OUGHT TO BE EXERCISES. A right to
rule is not a right to tyrannize; and a right to service extends only to such
duties as are consistent with the powers of the servants
and with the place
which is assigned to them. All power is of God
and can only be lawfully
exercised when exercised according to His designs. That likeness to God in
which we were originally created
should remind us that justice
and goodness
and mercy
are the chief distinctions after which we should aspire; and that
our dominion was designed
like that of Him who designed it
to be exercised
with wisdom
rectitude
and compassion. The consideration of our dominion
and
the services by which those who are subjected to our power
in such numberless
ways
minister to our comforts
only enforces on us more strongly the duty of
providing for their comfort
and preserving them from injury. And is it not the
very essence of benevolence to desire and to promote the happiness of every
being within the sphere of our influence? (S. McGill
D. D.)
The Divine blessing
Every loving father wishes his children well. The Divine Father
wishes the first human pair well
for such is the import of the words ¡§He
blessed them.¡¨ We can say
too
without any hesitancy
that He wishes every
member of the human family well
both for time and eternity. Those who are not
blessed
and there are thousands
ought not to ascribe this to God
but to
themselves. (A. McAuslane
D. D.)
To you it shall be for meat
The universe God¡¦s gift to man
I.
THE
GIFT.
1. Extensive.
2. Valuable.
3. Increasing.
Every day becoming better known and more thoroughly appreciated.
All the gifts of God are productive; time unfolds their measure
discloses
their meaning
and demonstrates their value.
II. THE PURPOSE.
1. To evince love. One of the great objects of creation was to
manifest the love of God to the human race
which was shortly to be brought
into existence. The light
the sun
the stars
and the creation of man; all
these were the love tokens of God. These were designed
not to display His
creative power--His wisdom
but His desire for the happiness of man.
2. To teach truth. The world is a great school. It is well supplied
with teachers. It will teach an attentive student great lessons. All the Divine
gifts are instructive.
3. To sustain life. God created man without means
but it was not
His will to preserve him without; hence He tells him where he is to seek his
food. We must make use of such creatures as God has designed for the
preservation of our life. God has provided for the preservation of all life.
Let us learn to trust God for the necessities of life in times of adversity.
Men who have the greatest possessions in the world must receive their daily
food from the hand of God. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
Dependence on God
I. LET EVERYONE
DEPEND UPON GOD FOR THE NECESSARIES OF LIFE.
1. Asking them by prayer.
2. Acknowledging our own beggary.
3. Trusting Him by faith.
4. Remembering His promise.
5. Obedient to His will.
II. LET US SERVE
HIM FAITHFULLY AT WHOSE TABLE WE ARE FED.
1. Else we are ungrateful.
2. Else we deserve famine. All the provisions that God allows man
for food are drawn out of the earth. The homeliness of the provision on which
God intended man to feed. (J. S. Exell
M. A.)
Let no man be discontented with mean fare
1. It is as good as the body
it nourishes.
2. It is better than we deserve.
3. It is more than we are able to procure of ourselves.
4. It is more profitable for health.
5. It is free from the temptation to excess. God gives us not all
our provisions at once
but a daily supply of them.
Food
1. It exerts an influence on
the disposition of man. A hungry man always feels the risings of cruelty
however they may be conquered by nobler principles. When you think of the
cruelty of an Indian you should always think of his famished condition.
2. It indicates the civilized condition of man. You are told that a
people are a wheat-eating people. Of course they must raise it; they must have
the plough and the ploughshare; they must command iron
or
at least
some hard
metal; they must understand the process of mining and smelting; they must have
fields and fences; they must have foresight to sow and patience to wait for a
crop; and
finally
they must be protected by law
for no one will lend the
labour who is not assured of protection.
3. It contributes to extensive social changes. The introduction of
sugar
for example
has changed the whole face of society. It was found to be
one of the purest and least cloying sweets ever discovered. It was handed from
the Arabs to the Spaniards; it was cultivated first in the Madeira Islands;
then it was given to all the European nations; was raised in the West Indies on
an immense scale. Then came rum
brandy
and all the alcoholic drinks
slavery
and all its consequences
until now it is a debated problem whether the sweet
cane was a blessing or a curse. At any rate this single article of food
so
unimportant and neglected in its origin
changed the whole face of society.
4. It indicates the general refinement of the mind. Nay
we are
instructed not to be totally indifferent to the kind of food
for
discrimination here is connected with other discrimination
and indicates
improvement in the taste. We will not take advantage of Dr. Johnson¡¦s remark
who held that he who did not mind his dinner would scarcely mind anything else.
Suffice it to say
that taste in food and taste in dress
science
and
literature
always go together. He that feeds grossly will judge grossly.
5. It is essential in order to the higher pursuits of life. Take
away from the astronomer his food
and he will soon cease to lift his telescope
to the stars. The saint
the martyr
the moralist
and the poet
all pursue
their sublime occupations through the vigour and animation of the body. In a
word
as the sweetest blossom on the highest tree
though it seems to be fed by
the very air which it decorates
is nourished by the dirt and manure around the
roots of the tree
so the sublimest mind is supplied by the food of the body. (Bib.
Sacra.)
Man¡¦s proper food
Remark here
that when God assigned to man
while still innocent
his proper food
he gave him only the fruits of the field; and it was not till
after the earth had been twice cursed because of sin that he was permitted to
eat the flesh of animals. ¡§Upon this point also
¡¨ says
M. de Rougemont
in his interesting ¡§History of the Earth
¡¨--¡§upon
this point
as well as others
science has arrived
by long
circuitous ways
and painful study
at the very same truths which are plainly revealed to us in
Genesis.¡¨ ¡§It is a question
¡¨ says M. Flourens
¡§which has much perplexed
physiologists
and which they have not yet been able to determine
what was the
natural and primitive food of man. Now
thanks to comparative anatomy
it is
very easy to see that man was originally neither herbivorous nor carnivorous
but frugivorous.¡¨ It was not till after the curse had been brought on the earth
by sin that man began to feed on the birds of the air and the beasts of the
field. Before he sinned he had a dominion over the creatures
which he lost in
a great measure
and which he only keeps in a degree by force and violence; but
at first they did not flee from him
and he did not eat them. Doubtless
before
man sinned
the productions of the earth were richer and better than they are
now
and offered a much greater variety of food and nourishment to man. But at
the fall the nature of the soil and of its vegetable productions must have been
in some way altered. Probably God greatly reduced the number of food-producing
plants
and the earth brought forth instead those bearing useless thorns
and
even some whose fruits or juices cause death. (Prof. Gaussen.)
The miracle of nourishment
Perhaps it may appear to you a very natural thing that corn
strawberries
cherries
grapes
figs
dates
peaches
pineapples
and all the
various and delicious fruits of our orchards and of other climates
should feed
and nourish you; but think of the miracle which must be wrought in your
body--in your stomach
your lungs
your heart
your veins
your glands
your
arteries
and all the various parts within you--before these fruits
or any
other food that you eat
can be prepared inyour stomach
changed into a kind of
milky substance
and conveyed in your veins
and passed with your blood through
one of the ventricles of your heart
and thence into your lungs
to be burned
and purified there
and return again as perfect blood into the other ventricle
and thence be driven by a rapid movement into your arteries
and to the very
extremities of your body
in order that it may reproduce
without your
interference
your skin
your flesh
your bones
your nerves
your nails
and
the thousands and thousands of the hairs of your head. It is a miracle wrought
by God
that any kind of food
whether leaves
seeds
fruits
or bread should
serve as food and nourishment to me at all; it is a mystery and a wonder how it
is changed into a part of my body
so as to make it grow
repair it
and renew
its waste: and therefore it was a work of almighty power when God appointed
man¡¦s food
and said of the trees and plants
¡§To you it shall be for meat.¡¨
What is bread? It is a paste composed of ground corn
water
and salt
baked
after it has begun to ferment. But how does it happen that the corn and the
salt should nourish me? Corn
we are told
is composed of carbon and the two
gases which form water. Now
how can carbon or charcoal nourish me? Try to eat
a bit of charcoal
and you will find it like taking a mouthful of sand. Think
how wonderfully these substances
of which corn is composed
must be
transformed by Divine power to produce the corn
and then still further changed
to become a part of our bodies. Then salt is composed of two substances which
separately would hurt me
and yet combined they are wholesome
and help to
cause the corn and other things to nourish me. If I were to take two phials
one filled with sodium and the other with hydrochloric acid
and if I were to
mix them in a glass
they would combine and form salt at the bottom of the
glass; and yet
separately
each of these phials would contain a destructive
poison. If I were to swallow the hydrochloric acid
it would burn my stomach;
and if I were to pour it into the palm of my hand and hold it there
it would
soon burn a hole right through my hand; and yet this dreadful poison
when
combined with sodium
forms salt
which is so wholesome and so necessary for
our health. (Prof. Gaussen.)
Nature productive
The botanist Ray tells us that he counted 2
000 grains of maize on
a single plant of maize sprung from one seed
4
000 seeds on one plant of
sunflower
32
000 seeds on a single poppy plant
and 36
000 seeds on one plant
of tobacco. Pliny tells us that a Roman governor in Africa sent to the Emperor
Augustus a single plant of corn with 340 stems
bearing 340 ears--that is to
say
at least 60
000 grains of corn had been produced from a single seed. In
modern times
12
780 grains have been produced by a single grain of the famous
corn of Smyrna. In eight years
as much corn might spring from one seed as to
supply all mankind with bread for a year and a half. (Prof. Gaussen.)
And God saw everything that He had made
and
behold
it was very
good
Creation very good
I.
Why
was it very good?
1. It was the offspring of infinite wisdom and power and love.
2. Because guided into existence by Jesus.
3. Because there was no evil in it.
4. Because it was like God.
II. WHAT was very
good? Everything which He had made.
III. How are they
very good? In themselves--in their purposes--in their arrangements.
IV. IS EVERYTHING
VERY GOOD STILL? God is fetching very good things out of the apparent
frustration of His plan. He is restoring what is now very bad to be very good.
(J. Bolton.)
The good creation
No one can prove to us that God made the world; but faith
which
is stronger than all arguments
makes us certain of it.
1. All which God has made is good
as He is
and
therefore
if
anything in the world seems to be bad
one of two things must be true of it.
2. God created each of us good in His own mind
else He would not
have created us at all. Why does God¡¦s thought of us
God¡¦s purpose about us
seem to have failed? We do not know
and we need not know. Whatever sin we
inherited from Adam
God looks on us now
not as we are in Adam
but as we are
in Christ. God looks not on the old corrupt nature which we inherited from
Adam
but on the new and good grace which God has meant for us from all
eternity
which Christ has given us now.
III. That which is
good in us God has made; He will take care of what He haw made
for He loves
it. All which is bad in us God has not made
and therefore He will destroy it;
for He hates all that He has not made
and will not suffer it in His world.
Before all worlds
from eternity itself
God said
¡§Let Us make man in Our
likeness
¡¨ and nothing can hinder God¡¦s word but the man himself. If a man
loves his fallen nature better than the noble
just
loving grace of God
and
gives himself willingly up to the likeness of the beasts that perish
then only
can God¡¦s purpose towards him become of none effect. (C. Kingsley
M. A.)
God in nature; or
spring lessons
I. GLIMPSES OF
THE DIVINE NATURE.
1. The ceaseless and infinite energy of God.
2. The blessedness and beauty of God.
II. LESSONS
CONCERNING HUMAN LIFE. It is an old
but true comparison of this life to the
seasons of the year. Spring has always suggested the refreshing
promising
transient
and changeable nature of life¡¦s early days. But notice
especially
the improvability of life. Spring
the cultivating season. Conditional. Spring
neglected
autumn shows barren fields. Precarious. Buds
etc. may be blighted.
Need for watching
etc.
III. SUGGESTIONS
CONCERNING HUMAN DESTINY. In spring ¡§all things become new.¡¨ To be ¡§young
again¡¨ has been the dream of all ages. The distinct proof of immortal youth
beyond the grave is given only by Christ ¡§The First-begotten of the dead.¡¨ (J.
Foster
B. A.)
I. THE NATURAL
TRUTHS ASSERTED.
God¡¦s approbation of His works
1. The true origin of all things.
2. The original perfection of all things.
3. God¡¦s approbation of His works.
II. THE MORAL
TRUTHS SUGGESTED.
1. Seeing that God had done for man the utmost that his case
admitted
both as respected himself
and as respected the world around him
the
blessings of which were given him richly to enjoy
it follows that man was
under the greatest obligations possible
in his then present circumstances.
2. Sin is at once the vilest injustice and the basest ingratitude
imaginable Isaiah 1:2; Malachi 1:6).
3. A continuance in sin is the most daring imprudence. According to
that constitution of things which was ¡§very good
¡¨ holiness and happiness went
together. Sin
by violating that constitution
¡§brought death into the world
with all our woe.¡¨
4. Reformation is well-pleasing to God. He approved of things in
their original state. He is unchangeable.
5. The text suggests a lesson of humility. ¡§How is the gold become
dim!¡¨ the Divine image effaced I Humility becomes every rational creature
on
account of its debt and its dependence.
6. The text furnishes ground of hope and encouragement. It proclaims
the goodness of Him with whom we have to do; and therefore encourages us to
hope in His mercy. Let us remember
however
that it is to the gospel we are
indebted for improving hope into assurance (Romans 8:32). (Sketches of Sermons.)
God¡¦s approbation of His works
Let us consider--
I. The natural
truths asserted by our text. Among these are--
1. The true origin of all things--¡§God saw everything that He had
made.¡¨
2. The original perfection of all things ¡§very good
¡¨ ¡§very good
¡¨
as being--
3. God¡¦s approbation of His work. He saw it very good.
II. The moral
truths suggested.
1. Gratitude.
2. Hatred of sin.
3. The discontinuing of all evil.
4. Reformation and return to virtue.
5. Humility.
6. A ground of hope and encouragement.
Everything in species made perfect at one and the same time in the
creation
All artists
in what they do
have their second thoughts (and
those usually are the best); as
for example
a watchmaker sets upon a piece of
work (it being the first time that ever men were wont to carry a pastime in
their pockets)
but
having better considered of it
he makes another
and a
third
some oval
some round
some square
everyone adding lustre and
perfection to the first invention
whereas
heretofore
they were rather like
warming pans
to weary us
than warning pieces
to admonish us how the time
passed. The like may be said of the famous art of printing
painting
and the
like
all of them outdoing the first copies they were set to go by. But it was
not so with God in the creation of the several species of nature; He made them
all perfect
simul et semel
at one and the same time
everything pondere
et mensura
so just
so proportionate in the parts
such an elementary
harmony
such a symmetry in the bodies of animals
such a correspondency of
vegetals
that nothing is defective
neither can anything be added to the
perfection thereof. (J. Spencer.)
The love of beauty: in nature
In these most simple and mysterious words we are plainly told that
in the beginning the Creator of this world delighted in the beauty of its
outward form. He approved it not only as fit for the material development which
He had designed for it
fit for the ages of change
the course of history which
should be enacted on it: but also as outwardly delightful. He saw His work
and
behold
to sight it was very good. Apart from all the uses it would serve
its outward aspect was in harmony with a certain Divine law: and for this
Almighty God judged that it was very good. If men would only look frankly at
the first chapter of Genesis
without either timidity or injustice
it would
surely seem very strange to find this simple and complete anticipation of a
thought which
though it has been astir in the world for many centuries
has
only in the last few years received its due emphasis and its logical force. I
mean the thought that our delight in the visible beauty of this world can only
be explained by the belief that the world has in some way been made to give us
this delight by a Being who Himself knows what beauty is: and that the beauty
of Nature is a real communication made to us concerning the mind and will that
is behind Nature . . . We have then a right to say that the quality or
character which can thus speak and appeal to our spirit must have been
engendered in this visible world by a spiritual Being able and willing to enter
into communion with us
and knowing what would affect and raise our thoughts.
When we receive and read a letter
we are sure it has come from someone who
knew our language and could write it. When we listen to a beautiful piece of
music we are sure that the composer had either a theoretic or at least a
practical acquaintance with the laws and the effects of harmony. And when at
the sight of a great landscape
rich and quiet in the chaste glory of the
autumn
or glad with the bright promise
the fearless freedom of the spring
our whole heart is filled with happiness
and every sense seems touched with
something of a pleasure that was meant for it
and all words are utterly too
poor to praise the sight--then surely
by as good an argument
we must say
that
through whatever ways and means
the world received its outward aspect by
the will of some being who knew the law and truth of beauty. It does not
matter
so far as this inference is concerned
how the result has been
attained
or how many ages and thousands of secondary causes are traced between
the beginning of the work and its present aspect: it is beautiful now: it now speaks
to us in a language which our spirits understand: and
however long ago
and in
whatever way
only a spiritual being could have taught it so to speak. Whatever
creation means
the world was created by One who could delight in beauty:
whenever its Author looked out upon His work He must have seen that it was very
good Lastly
but above all
if we are to receive from the visible beauty of the
world all that it can reveal to us concerning Him who made and praised it
we
must draw near to it with watchful obedience to His own condition for so great
a blessing: ¡§Blessed are the pure in heart
for they shall see God.¡¨ It was
nobly said by the founder of inductive science
that for entrance into the
kingdom of knowledge as for entrance into the kingdom of heaven
men must
become as little children. They must draw near with free and humble hearts if
they are to enter into the mysteries of natural science: they must not dictate
to Nature
or assert themselves in her presence: they must come to her with
affectionate attention to wait upon her self-revealing. (F. Paget
D. D.)
Admiration of completed work
¡§The Lord rejoices in His works.¡¨ What a wonderful sentence that
is! That man must have been inspired when he said that God rested from His
labours
and looked upon His works
and pronounced them good. Of all joys
that
is the grandest and sublimest
to review one¡¦s own work and pronounce it good.
There is no passage in English much more beautiful than that which describes
the author of that great work on ¡§Falling Rome¡¨ (Gibbon) when he had just come
to the conclusion of his task. Walking there under the trees of Lausanne
he
like a true artist
drew back and admired his finished work. And he was right.
For there are times when a man may look upon his work
and say
¡§That is
genius!¡¨ When Swift was beginning to doat
he took down from a shelf one of his
own works
and exclaimed
¡§What a genius I must have had when I did that!¡¨ (G.
Dawson.)
Perfection of nature
I have seen the back of a splendid painting
and there
on the dusty
canvas
were blotches and daubs of colour--the experiments of the painter¡¦s
brush. There is nothing answering to that in the works of God! I have seen the
end of a piece of costly velvet; and though man had in it fairly imitated the
bloom of the fruit and the velvet of the flowers
there was a common
unwrought
worthless selvage--a coarse
unsightly selvage. There is no selvage
in the works of God! (H. Wonnacott.)
A pretty world
I once
writes Joaquin Miller
strolled through a miserable
Mexican village. The shadows were creeping over the cabins
where women came
and went in silence
and men sat smoking at the cabin doors
while children
played in swarms by the water. The air was like a breath of God
and all nature
seemed as sacred as rest to a weary man. A black
bent
old negro woman
all
patches from head to foot
frosty-headed and half blind
came crooning forth
with a broken pot tied together
in which she had planted a flower to grow by
her door. I stopped
watched her set it down and arrange it; and then
not
wishing to stare rudely at this bent old creature
I said--¡§Good evening
auntie; it¡¦s a fine evening.¡¨ She slowly straightened up
looked at me
looked
away at the fading sunlight on the hills
and said softly
¡§Oh
it¡¦s a pretty
world
massa!¡¨ The old woman was a poetess--a prophetess. She had a soul to see
the beauty
the poetry about her. ¡§Oh
it¡¦s a pretty world
massa!¡¨ She had no
other form of expression
but that was enough. Hers was the password to nature.
¡§And God saw every
thing that He had made
and
behold it was very good.¡¨.
¢w¢w¡mThe Biblical Illustrator¡n